GIFT OF A MISSION TO VITI ..".': '• '. .'.- Drawn by D.Macdonald RATU VAKARURU, A CHIEF OF V I T I L EV U . VITI: °V ACCOUNT OF A GOVERNMENT MISSION TO THE VITIAN OR FIJIAN ISLANDS IN THE YEARS 1860-61. BY BERTHOLD SEEMANN, PH.D., F.L.S., F.R.G.S., AUTHOR OF THE NARRATIVE AND THE BOTANY OF H.M.S. HERAVD, 'POPULAR HISTORY OP PALMS,' ETC. KTC. t'tfj 3Hlu0trat{0n0 ant» a Jlap. fiambrtogt ; MACMILLAN & CO., AND 23, HENRIETTA STREET, COVENT GARDEN, LONDON. 1862. The riyht of translation in reserved by the Author. yd. JOHN EDWARD TAYLOR, PRINTER, LITTLE QUEEN STREET, LINCOLN'S INN FIELDS. TO SIR RODERICK IMPEY MURCHISON, D.C.L., LL.D., F.E.S., DIEECTOE OF THE GEOLOGICAL SUEVEY, ETC., ETC., ETC., WHOSE PBE-EMINENCE IN SCIENCE HAS ALWAYS BEEN COUPLED WITH A GENEEOUS ENCOUEAGEMENT OF THE LABOUBS OF OTHEBS, WITH FEELINGS OF HIGH EEGAED AND ESTEEM BY THE AUTHOE. PREFACE. IN 1859 Mr. W. T. Pritchard, H.B.M. Consul in Fiji, son of the Rev. George Pritchard, formerly of Tahiti, arrived in England with a document purporting to be the cession of Fiji — or rather Viti — to the Queen of Great Britain. The cession had been made by Cakobau (= Thakombau), the principal chief of Bau and king of the whole group, and with the consent of the lead- ing chiefs. The importance of accepting the proffered sovereignty was insisted upon by parties capable of taking a comprehensive view of the question. The Le- gislative Assembly of New South Wales, on the motion of Mr. M' Arthur, voted an address to the Queen in sup- port of this proposal. Captain Towns, a patriotic citizen of Sydney, fully impressed, like many of his country- men, with the importance of acquiring the islands, ge- nerously offered a cheque for the whole Fijian debt, in order to remove at least one of the possible obstacles in the way of the cession. Nor is it any secret that the occupation of the islands has been recommended by Captains Fremantle, Denham, Erskine, and Loring, and Admirals Washington* and Sir Edward Belcher; in * See Appendix. yiii PREFACE. fact, by all naval men who knew anything about the subject. Men high in office were equally favourably in- clined towards the cession. However, before coming to any definite decision, the Government determined to obtain more ample -information than was at hand, and early in 1860 I was asked to join a "Mission to Viti" dispatched for that purpose. Whilst in Fiji, I was induced to write a series of letters on the country, its people, and productions, to the 'Athenaeum,' which that journal did me the honour to publish, and which, whole or in part, found their way into several other home and colonial papers, were translated into German and French, and altogether ob- tained a circulation for which their original place of publication alone can account. On my return to Lon- don I was urged to make additions to this series, and I acceded to this wish by bringing the subject before the Royal Geographical Society, and writing papers for the ' Gardeners' Chronicle * and Galton's well-known ' Va- cation Tourists and Notes of Travel.' But a good deal of matter remained still unpublished, which, together with the pith of all I have previously made known, will be found in the following pages. In order that the public may have the means of form- ing a correct judgment on the Fijian question, I have reprinted in the Appendix Colonel Smythe's Official Report, at variance as it is with all that has been written on the islands. My impression of Fiji and its inhabitants was most favourable, and I am convinced that, under judicious management, the country would PREFACE. ix become a flourishing colony, — an opinion shared by almost all who have visited the group, as was again proved at a crowded meeting at the Geographical So- ciety when the subject was discussed. Desirous of collecting as many productions of the country as possible, I neglected to investigate several subjects which fell not within my assigned province. It was only after the publication of Colonel Smythe's ' Re- port,' that I became aware of the full importance of my neglect. For instance, it would have been very important to know how many thousand acres of land had passed out of the hands of the natives. As a great many islands and vast tracts of country have already been purchased by British subjects, statistics on these points would pro- bably have materially influenced the decision of Her Majesty's Government with respect to the acceptance of the cession. Amongst other things I brought home a comprehen- sive collection of plants, which, together with those already in this country, chiefly accumulated by Govern- ment expeditions, furnish ample materials for a Flora of Fiji, a Flora Vitiensis. I expended a good deal of my own money in order to make these collections as complete as possible, and was in hopes that the Govern- ment would see fit to assist me in publishing such a work, especially as my report on the resources and ve- getable productions of the islands had been presented to both Houses of Parliament by command of Her Majesty, and the nature, and possible value of the pro- jected publication must have become evident. His PREFACE. Grace the Duke of Newcastle, ever ready to advance science, fully sharing these hopes, made an application to the Treasury to that effect, but was "very sorry to inform me that his application had been unsuccessful." Thinking what had been collected with so much ex- pense, under great difficulties, and in a country only partially reclaimed from cannibalism, was also worth making known, I resolved to incur the risk of publish- ing the work at my own cost. It will consist of 400 pages of letter-press (quarto), and 100 coloured plates, all representing objects hitherto unknown to science, and drawn by the skilful pencil of Mr. Fitch. The work will take about three years to bring out, and its publication will commence immediately. All the native names are spelt according to the sys- tem of orthography laid down in Hazel wood's ' Fijian Dictionary ' (London : Triibner and Co.), and wherever any deviation should be discovered, it may be regarded as a mistake of mine, unless particularly noticed. No- thing but endless confusion will be the result if every nation is allowed to write Fijian names according to its own orthography. For the illustrations of my present work I am indebted to Mrs. Smythe, Dr. Macdonald, and Captain Denham, to whom I beg to tender my best thanks, as well as to those friends who, since my de- parture from Fiji, have kept me supplied with the latest intelligence from that group. BERTHULD SEEMANN. London, September 30, 1862. CONTENTS. CHAPTEE I. Page Departure from England. — Arrival at Sydney. — Voyage to Fiji. — The 'John Wesley.'— The Pitcairners at Norfolk Island.— First Glimpse of Fiji. — Lakeba. — The Tongtiese. — Visit to a Mission Station. — First Botanical Excursion. — Hints to Collectors. — Native Church. — Bark-cloth Manufacture. — Tomb of a Chief. — Missionary Life. — Departure from Lakeba ....... 1 CHAPTEE II. Island of Taviuni. — The King of Cakaudrove. — Elephantiasis. — Kind Offer of Mr. Waterhouse and Captain Wilson. — Somosomo, its Advantages and Disadvantages. — Queen Eleanor. — Ascent of Summit of Taviuni. — A Eoyal Escort. — Sylvan Scene. — Arrival at the Top. — Singular Swamp of Vegetable Turtle Fat. — Dinner. — Timidity of the Natives. — Chief Golea's Eeturn from a Military Expedition. — Polygamy. — The Eotuma-Men. — Wairiki. — Arrival of the ' Paul Jones '. 19 CHAPTEE III. Fiji as a Cotton-growing Country. — Cotton not Indigenous but Na- turalized.— Native Names. — Number of Species.— Average Pro- duce of the Wild Cotton. — Excellence of Fijian Cotton acknow- ledged at Manchester. — Efforts of British Consul and Missionaries to extend its Cultivation. — The First Thousand Pounds of Cotton sent Home. — Establishment of a Plantation at Somosomo, Wakaya, and Nukunioto. — Prospects of Cotton-growing in Fiji . . .48 xii CONTENTS. CHAPTER IV. Page Departure from Somosomo. — Island of Wakaya. — The Balolo. — Ar- rival at Levuka.— H.B.M. Consul.— The Late Mr. Williams.— Lado and its Origin. — Site for the New Capital. — The King of Fiji. — Bau. — Causes of its Supremacy. — Viwa . . . .58 CHAPTER V. The Wai Levu or Great River. — Canal Dug by Natives. — Matai- suva. — Institution for Training Native Teachers. — Sacred Groves, Trees, and Stones. — Mosquitoes. — Island of Naigani. — Mr. Egger- strom's Kindness. — Feuds at Nadroga. — Nukubalawu. — Taguru. — Navua River ........... 82 CHAPTER VI. Stay at Navua. — Chief Kuruduadua's Household. — " Harry the Jew." — A Prince as he was Born. — Massacre Prevented. — Kuruduadua's Character.— Statement of Mr. Heekes Respecting the Namuka Outrage. — Town and Bures of Navua. — Tatooing. — Return to Lado. 97 CHAPTER VII. Arrival of Colonel Smythe from New Zealand. — The ' Pegasus ' and ' PaulJones.' — Visit to Bau. — Quarrelsome Disposition of the Chief of the Fishermen. — Cession of Fiji to England. — First Official Interview with the King 120 CHAPTER VIII. Excursions to Koroivau and Namara. — Departure from Bau. — Passage through the Great River of Viti Levu. — Buretu.— Apostate Chris- tians.— Rewa. — Arrival at Tavuki, Kadavu. — Whale Ships. — At- tempt to ascend Buke Levu. — The Isthmus of Kadavu. — Ga Loa or Black Duck Bay.— Departure for Navua 133 CONTENTS. xiii CHAPTEE IX. Page Departure from Kadavu. — Arrival at Navua. — A Court of Justice. — Starting for the Interior. — The Navua River. — Its Fine Scenery. — Rapids. — A Canoe upset. — Town of Nagadi. — Hospitable Recep- tion. — Soromato. — Kidnapping. — Family Prayers. — Heathen Temple. — A Large Snake to be Cooked. — March across the Country. — VumVaivutuku. — A Difficult Road. — A Purse Lost. — No Thieves. — Arrival at Namosi. — Danford's Establishment. — His Usefulness as a Pioneer ..... .146 CHAPTER X. Popular Ideas Respecting the Interior of Viti Levu. — Malachite and Antimony. — Ascent of Voma Peak. — Visit to a Heathen Temple. — " Spirit Fowls." — Official Meeting with Kuruduadua and his Subjects. — A Rebellion to be Suppressed. — Presentation of Food. —"The Oldest Inhabitants."— A Court- Fool and his Tricks.— Mr. Waterhouse Preaching. — Departure of Colonel Smythe and Messrs. Pritchard and Waterhouse, for Nadroga 160 CHAPTER XI. Fijian Cannibalism. — The Great Cauldron. — Naulumatua and his Ap- petite for Human Flesh. — Bokola. — Vegetables Eaten with Cannibal Food. — The Ominous Taro. — Approximate Number of Bodies eaten at Namosi. — Ovens for Baking Dead Men. — Suspension of the Bones. — Not all Fijians Cannibals. — Efforts of the Liberal Party to Suppress Anthropophagism. — Aided by Europeans. — Real Signifi- cance of Eating Man only Partly Understood. — Concessions to Hu- manity.— Abolition of Cannibalism throughout Kuruduadua's Do- minions ... .... .'.... 173 CHAPTER XII. Stay at Namosi Prolonged. — The Governor's Attention. — "Crown Jewels." — The Clerk of the Weather. — Sorcerers. — Fijian Family Life.— Story-Tellers Popular —A Fijian Tale 186 XIV CONTENTS. CHAPTEE XIII. Page Departure from Namosi. — Vuniwaivutuku. — The " Veil." — Mode of Tatooing the Mouth. — Passing down the Navua River. — Nagadi cleared out by its Vasu. — Our Canoe Capsized. — Return to the ' Paul Jones.' — Kuruduadua's Character. — Leaving Navua. — Bega. — Mr. Storck's Illness. — Return to Kadavu. — Ascent of Bute Levu. — Rewa. — Immigrants from New Zealand. — Mr. Moore's Powerful Sermon. — Arrival at Lado. — Office Drudgery . . . 202 CHAPTER XIV. Voyage around Vanua Levu. — Departure from Lado. — East Coast of Viti Levu. — Nananu Island. — The Fijian Mount Olympus. — Bua. — Naicobocobo. — Nukubati. — Naduri. — Interview with the Chief. — Discontent of his Subjects. — Beche-de-mer Trade. — Mua i Udu and its Superstitions. — Na Ceva Bay. — Arrival at Waikava. — Visit to my Cotton Plantation. — Meeting at Waikava. — Departure . . 222 CHAPTER XV. History of the Tongamen in Fiji. — Their Physical Superiority over the Fijians. — Their Arrogance. — Captain Croker's Defeat. — Early Intercourse between Tonga and Fiji. — Increase of Tonguese Immi- gration.— Chief Maafu. — King George of Tonga visits Fiji. — Con- quest of Kaba and Rabe. — Arrival of British Consul. — Cession of Fiji. — Maafu's Attempted Conquest. — Ritova and Bete. — Maafu's Ambition Curbed. — Peace Restored. — Ritova Installed in his Estates. — Tonguese Intrigues Renewed. — Bete's Death. — Commodore Sey- mour's Visit. — Termination of the Wars between Fijians and Tongans . . 236 CHAPTER XVI. General Remarks on the Aspect, Climate, Soil, and Vegetation of Fiji. — Colonial Produce.— Staple Food.— Edible Roots. — Kitchen Vege- tables.— Edible Fruits. — National Beverages. — Kava . . . 274 CONTENTS. XV CHAPTER XVII. Page Vegetable Poisons. — Medicinal Plants. — Scents and Perfumes. — Ma- terials for Clothing. — Mats and Baskets. — Fibres used for Cordage. — Timber. — Palms. — Ornamental Plants. — Miscellaneous . . 332 CHAPTEE XVIII. Remarks on the Fauna of Fiji. — Mammals. — Birds. — Fishes. — Rep- tiles.— Mollusks. — Crustacea.— Insects. — Lower Animals . . 381 CHAPTEE XIX. Fijian Religion. — Degei, the Supreme God. — Inferior Deities. — Wor- ship of Ancestors. — Idolized Objects. — Temples. — Creation and Ultimate Destruction of the World. — A Great Flood. — Immor- tality of the Soul. — Conception of Future Abode. — Props of Superstition ... . 389 CHAPTEE XX. Historical Remarks on Fiji. — Discovery of the Islands. — Sandal- wood Traders. — Early White Settlers. — Missionaries. — Foreigners at present Residing in the Group. — Departure from Fiji in the ' Stag- hound.' — Terrific Storm off Lord Howe's Island. — Arrival in Syd- ney.— Return to England. — Conclusion 404 APPENDIX. I.— Report of Admiral Washington, R.N 419 II.— Report of Colonel Smythe, R.A., to Colonial Office . . .421 III. — Systematic List of all the Fijian Plants at present known . 431 VITI: AN ACCOUNT OF A GOVERNMENT MISSION TO THE TITIAN OR FIJIAN ISLANDS. CHAPTER I. DEPAETUEE FEOM ENGLAND. — AEEIVAL AT SYDNEY. — VOYAGE TO FIJI. — THE ' JOHN WESLEY.' — THE PITCAIENEES AT NOEFOLK ISLAND. — FIEST GLIMPSE OF FIJI. — LAKEBA. — THE TONGUESE. — VISIT TO A MISSION STATION. — FIEST BOTANICAL EXCUESION. — HINTS TO COLLECTOES. — NA- TIVE CHUECH. — BAEK-CLOTH MANUFACTUEE. — TOMB OF A CHIEF. — MIS- SIONAEY LIFE. — DEPAETUEE FEOM LAKEBA. HAVING left Southampton on the 12th of February, 1860, by the overland mail, and having touched at Mauritius, King George's Sound, and Melbourne, I arrived at Syd- ney on the 16th of April, where I was to join Colonel Smythe, R.A., — who had gone out by the previous mail, — and proceed with him in her Majesty's ship ' Cordelia,' it was supposed, to Fiji. The first news heard was, that a war had broken out in New Zealand, in consequence of which all available naval force had been dispatched to the scene of action. This altered our plans consider- ably. Colonel Smythe, thinking that the outbreak of native discontent would be only of short duration, and B TO vm. that after its termination he should still be able to ob- tain a Government vessel for Fiji, resolved to proceed by the mail steamer to New Zealand. He came on board the ' Benares ' to communicate this resolution to me, but I, having made an attempt to find him on shore, was absent, and as his steamer left soon after the English mail had been transferred, 1 did not meet with him until three months afterwards. Sir William Denison, to whom I had letters from the home Government, advised me either to go to New Zealand and wait there for an opportunity, or else di- rect to Fiji, in the missionary vessel ' John Wesley,' about to sail that day. Wishing to economize my time as much as possible, I preferred the latter. In com- municating with the Rev. John Eggleston, General Se- cretary of the Wesleyan Mission, that gentleman kindly postponed the departure of their vessel a few days, in order to afford me time for making the necessary pre- parations for future explorations. He supplied me be- sides with letters of introduction to residents in the Fijian islands, books, and a list of articles used as barter, all of which proved highly acceptable. In reply to Sir William Denison's asking for a passage for me and my assistant, Mr. Jacob Storck, Mr. Eggleston cheerfully granted a free passage to both of us, at the same time reminding the Governor-General that the Wesleyan a body felt under obligations to the Government for frequently allowing their vessels to assist their mis- sionaries in the Pacific Ocean, rendering them timely aid, and supplying them with medicines, and bringing them home when ill. With the assistance of Mr. Chains FELLOW-VOYAGERS. 6 Moore, Director of the Botanic Gardens at Sydney, I was enabled to complete all my arrangements without loss of time. When embarking, I had accumulated a whole cart-load of luggage, containing none save the most necessary things, and surveyed by me with a heavy heart when thinking of the difficulty of transporting them from island to island. None save those who have experienced it, can have any conception of travelling in countries where no money is current, and all is paid for in kind. How easy is moving about when one can carry a whole year's travelling expenses in the waistcoat pocket ! But think of people never doing a thing for you unless you have counted out, or measured off, the requisite number or amount of your stock in trade. All being ready and the wind fair, I left Sydney Har- bour on Friday, April 20, 1860, on board the 'John Wesley,' Captain Birkenshaw. There were, in all, six passengers, — Captain Wilson, from Sydney, about to look after his cocoa-nut oil establishment at Somosomo; Mr. and Mrs. Harrison, a missionary and his wife, for Fiji ; Mr. Storck and myself, and a Fijian native teacher, who had come to Sydney with the vieAV of proceeding to England, but who, after reaching New South Wales, had become so home-sick, that he was obliged to return to his native country. Though having been only a few thousand miles, he would be regarded as a mighty tra- veller on his return, and doubtless looked upon himself as such. For, as the Italian would wish " to see Naples, and die," or the Spaniard declares that— " El que no ha vista Sevilla No ha vista maravilla " — B 2 4 A MISSION TO VITI. so the South-Sea Islanders would say, " Let me behold Sydney, and go home again." No one should speak ill of the bridge that carries him over, or look a gift-horse in the mouth ; but I have been so frequently asked about the ' John Wesley,' that I may be exculpated when saying a few words about the vessel as she appeared to me. The ' John Wesley' was launched in 1846, having been built by Messrs. White and Sons, of Cowes, and being paid for by charitable contributions. I have read high eulogiums on her, but anybody who has sailed in her will not be inclined to endorse them. It has never been my misfortune to be on board a vessel behaving worse than she did. She is about thirty feet too short, and never easy, let the wind be ever so favourable and the sea as smooth as a pond. In a slight gale the pitching is awful, and the rolling terrific. We were often watching and* won- dering what would be her next move after all these had been going on for awhile, when perhaps she would shake her rudder so violently that one almost feared it must come out. In consequence of her constant un- easiness, the wear and tear in ropes and spars is con- siderable, and the annual expenditure must be much greater than might be expected from a vessel of her size. Nearly every morning there was something gone, and we used to chaff the captain about the superior be- haviour of his craft; but he, like a true sailor, would defend her through thick and thin. In rough weather she had, besides, the bad quality of leaking ; and, as some of the cocoa-nut oil carried in her on a former occasion had oozed out of the tanks and casks and THE 'JOHN WESLEY. O become rancid, the stench was quite overpowering. It requires a peculiar constitution not to become sea- sick on board, and this is perhaps the most serious in- convenience that the missionaries and their families suffer when going backwards and forwards in her to the Colonies, or from island to island. When we left Syd- ney Harbour, I observed several of our men in unfurl- ing sails, sea-sick, a sight I never before beheld ; and Mr. and Mrs. Harrison were ill during nearly the whole passage. Nor is she, with all these drawbacks, a fast or a good sailer. We wrere twenty-three days from Sydney to Fiji, a distance of 1,735 miles, and I believe that may be considered a fair average passage. The crew was an extremely mongrel set. There were men of all colours, countries, and religions : black Africans, copper-coloured Chilians, and white Englishmen; Heathens, Mahome- tans, Eoman Catholics, and Protestants. I expressed my surprise that in a vessel belonging to a religious society there should be so mixed a ship's company ; but the Captain thought it rather an advantage than other- wise, offering, as it did, a field for missionary labours during the voyage. Indeed, when not suffering from sea-sickness, Mr. Harrison made some attempts in that direction. We endeavoured to make Norfolk Island, but could not fetch it within about one hundred miles. I should have liked to look at that charming spot, which, no longer a convict station, as in days of yore, has lately been given by the Government to the Pitcairners, — those much-petted descendants of ' Bounty' mutineers and Ta- hitian women, — because their own little island began 6 A MISSION TO VITI. to be too small for the growing community. The Pit- cairn ers landed on the 8th of June, 1856, from the ' Morayshire,' a vessel belonging to Mr. Dunbar, of Lon- don, commanded by Mr. Joseph Mathers, and under the agency of Acting-Lieutenant G. W. Gregorie, of her Majesty's ship 'Juno.' They numbered in all 194 souls, one of whom died soon after landing ; the rest comprising 40 men, 47 women, 54 boys, and 52 girls. Almost an entire week was employed in disembarking all the seventy years' gathering of chattels, including almost every moveable article, even to the " gun " and " anvil " of the ' Bounty.' On landing they wrere greeted individually by the commissariat officer and Captain Denham, of her Majesty's ship ' Herald,' who happened to be there, and then conducted to their com- fortably-prepared quarters, until they should be able to make their own selection from the commodious dwell- ings erected for them. Dr. Macdonald instructed the islanders essentially in the resources of the ample dis- pensary at their use, whilst the artificers of the ' Herald' imparted to them the uses of a variety of tools and implements, comprising the wind and water mills ; in- deed, everything was done to make them comfortable. The first provident step for future provision was taken by planting their favourite sweet-potato, and, pending harvest time, which they gave six months to come about, the ' Herald ' left the newly-transferred community pro- vided with 45,000 Ibs. of biscuit, flour, maize, and rice, with groceries in proportion, and abundance of milk at their hands; whilst their live stock consisted of 1300 sheep, 430 cattle, 22 horses, 10 swine in sties, 16 do- THE PITCA1RN ISLANDERS. 7 mestic fowls, and a quantity of wild pigs and fowls. Even 16,000 Ibs. of hay and 5000 of straw were left them ; and, lest their first crop should be late or fall short, a list of additional supplies was sent to the Go- vernor-General.* According to all accounts the Pit- cairners do not display themselves to advantage in their new home, and most visitors are anything but pleased with them. As might have been expected, the nume- rous presents given and sent to them have had a bad effect, making them accomplished beggars, who state their case in such a wTay as will most readily induce the hearer to give them some present or influence others to do so. They are besides said to be an indolent set, who, rather than fetch fuel from the woods, will burn the floors, doors, and window-frames of the fine buildings erected by the convicts, and generously placed by Go- vernment at their disposal. If report be true, Sir Wil- liam Denison, on his visit to the island, gave them a severe and well-deserved lecture on this head. Several of them are said to have already returned to Pitcairn Island, where they seem to have felt more comfortable, though cramped for space, and a few are said to have embarked in whaling operations. Let us hope that the whole community, about which so much truth and fic- tion has been written, may gradually be led to habits of industry, and learn to rely more upon its own resources than the charitable contributions of others. On the 10th of May we got the trade wind, and on Saturday the 12th, about eight o'clock in the morning, caught the first glimpse of Fiji. We had left Sydney * See Captain Denham in ' Hydrographic Notice,' n. 5. A MISSION TO VITI. on the 20th of April, and had thus been twenty-three days on the passage, four of which we had strong gales and were compelled to heave to. We bantered the Captain a good deal about the long passage, and as- cribed it all to his having left on a Friday, at the same time accumulating instances where departures on that unlucky day had been followed by as disastrous conse- quences as wrhen thirteen sit down to table. But he thought it high time that such vestiges of superstition should be rooted up, and said there was no more in them than in the Flying Dutchman. On the following day we were off Lakeba (Lakemba). It being Sunday, Captain Birkenshaw would not give offence by sending a boat on shore on the Sabbath. I suggested that we might all go to church as soon as landed, but he main- tained that it was as much as his place was worth to entertain such 'an idea; so we had the mortification of stopping another day on board, and sail backwards and forwards between the islands of Lakeba and Olorua. I enjoyed much the fine sight that thus was offered. The sky was clear and bright, and a number of little islands and islets were rising from the blue sea, the waves breaking on their rocky shores, or forming curly crests on the long reefs that encircle many of them. They were all more or less elevated, and covered with vegetation, here with patches of grass or brake and other hard-leaved ferns, there with brushwood or larger trees; the presence of countless screw-pines and iron- wood (Casuarina) trees imparting to them their peculiar Polynesian character. Well may it be said, that the graceful waving iron-wood bears on its very face the LANDING AT LAKEBA. 9 proof of its being at home in a country and in situations continually agitated by the trade winds. Any other tree would become stunted and unsightly under such circumstances, whilst the iron-wood is rendered only more graceful by them. The next morning we endeavoured to effect a landing, no easy task, as the sea was running rather high, and we had to search amidst a heavy surf for a channel through the reef encircling Lakeba, and on w^hich Colonel Smythe's vessel, the ' Pegasus,' struck, when paying a visit a few months afterwards. I have often admired the grandeur of the South Sea reef, wrhen the water breaks with all its force on that mighty fabric of coral and volcanic rock ; and wondered why such a grand sight has not as yet been immortalized by some great painter in search of a fitting subject for his brush. It is cer- tainly overpowering to sit down before Niagara, and watch the mighty masses of water steadily pouring into a gigantic basin. Impossible, one thinks, that such tuns and tuns can be discharged without the supply becom- ing exhausted. Nevertheless there is no abatement. As the sun rises it shines upon the foaming mass, and its last rays kiss the same spectacle. Like eternity, it is endless ; and our thoughts, taken captive as we gaze and gaze on the massive volumes, are wandering towards those realms whence no traveller has returned. The sight of a great South Sea reef is something equally grand, but produces a rather different effect. Besides being influenced by wind and tides, the surf assumes almost every moment a different aspect. Now it is little more than a long line of silent ripples, now it is lashed into 10 A MISSION TO VITI. wild spray to great heighjt, speaking in hollow roars, and showing a variety of tints which the pen must ever de- spair of depicting. So far from becoming absorbed in thought at such a sight, as at the monotonous grandeur of Niagara, one longs to stir, to push on, to become ac- tive like the never-resting element. Though we got a good wetting, and might have been swamped had it not been for the skilful steering of our mate, we landed in safety. As soon as the boat was near shore fifty or sixty natives plunged into the water to carry us on their backs to the beach, when we shook hands with Mr. Fletcher, one of the Wesleyan mission- aries stationed here. The natives were nearly all fine strapping fellows, some of them quite six feet high, and all Fijian, with the exception of a couple of Tonguese or Tonga men, inhabitants of a neighbouring group of islands. One of the latter was Charles, the son of the Tonguese chief, Maafu, a mighty man in Polynesian annals, and the source of much trouble, both in Tonga and Fiji. When most people read of " natives " they imagine them to be types of unsightliness, if not down- right ugliness ; of many races, not Caucasian, that may in some measure be true, but whoever goes to the South Seas will have reason to change his opinion en- tirely. Some of these islanders are really very hand- some, both in figure and face ; and all entitled to pro- nounce an opinion on the subject have agreed that there are few spots in the world where one sees so many hand- some people together as in Tonga. I have never been in Circassia, and can therefore not speak from personal experience ; but, if what one reads be correct, Tonga may THE TONGUESE. H fairly be classed with the Tyrol and Circassia, for its male population. I do not include the females, because, according to our taste, the women of Tonga, like those of the Tyrol, are too masculine and robust to please our conceptions of feminine beauty. When I looked at these Tonguese, with their fine athletic body, symmetrical, handsome faces, and rich dark hair, I could not refrain from thinking what caricatures civilization has made us. The gait of such a man is something to wonder at, and sculptors would find him a fine subject for study. Here they might obtain models almost approaching their notions of ideal perfection, instead of copying, as they now too often are compelled, the body of a life-guards- man, the head of a footman, and the hands and feet of some of higher-bred types. Charles Maafu, I was informed, had been sent to Lakeba by his father, as a punishment for several larks the young rascal had been up to. I don't wonder there should have been a great deal of temptation in his way, for, besides being the son of a powerful chief, a lineal descendant of one of the royal houses of Tonga (Finau), he was about eighteen years of age and ex- tremely handsome. He wore only a few yards of cotton cloth around his loins, and an ornament made of mother of pearl. King George, of Tonga, had proposed to have his own son and Charles educated at Sydney. The offer was unfortunately declined by Maafu, and the young man had thus learnt nothing except what he had been able to pick up in the missionary schools of the islands. Through a fine grove of cocoa-nut palms and bread- fruit trees, Mr. Fletcher kindly conducted us to his 12 A MISSION TO VITI. house, a commodious building, thatched with leaves, surrounded by a fence and a broad boarded verandah, the front of the house looking into a nice little flower- garden, the back into the courtyard. The ladies gave us a hearty welcome, no doubt being glad to look once more upon white faces and hear accounts from home. We had brought, besides provisions and stores for the next year, batches of letters and newspapers ; and those who have been in out-of-the-way places, and obtained after long intervals news from home, will be able to enter into the joy that prevailed. After being cramped on board a vessel for so many weeks, and tossed and rocked about night and day, it was a rare pleasure to us to sit down once more in a comfortable house on shore ; and comfortable the house certainly was. Though the thermometer ranged more than 80° Fahrenheit, the thick thatch kept off the scorching rays, and there was a fresh current of trade-wind blowing through the rooms. It was a pleasing sight to see everything so scrupulously neat and clean, the beds and curtains as white as snow, and everywhere the greatest order prevailing. There were all the elements of future civilization, models ready for imitation. The yard was well stocked with ducks and fowls, pigs and goats, the garden replete with flowers, roses in full bloom, but alas ! with little scent, cotton shrubs twelve feet high, and bearing leaves, flowers, and fruit, in all stages of development. These missionary stations are fulfilling all the objects of convents in their best days. When all around was barbarism, strife, and ignorance, they afforded a safe refuge to the weary tra- veller,— as they still do in the East, — and cultivated HINTS TO COLLECTORS. 13 sconce and religion at a time when scarcely any one thought of them. When you have reached a convent in the East, or a mission-station in the South Sea, you seem to be nearer home. You feel that you are amongst people whose sympathies incline into the same direction as your own, the mode of living also beginning to tell upon your animal spirits, and you fly to the library, limited though it may be, to have an hour with the great minds of civilization. Our stay at Lakeba being restricted to a few hours, I made all possible haste to collect specimens of the vege- tation. Quite a troop of boys followed, carrying baskets which they made in an incredibly short space of time, out of the leaves of the cocoa-nut palm. Determined to collect everything we could lay hands on, we accumu- lated about fifty different species, forming quite a load for our young attendants. The true secret of making comprehensive collections, whether of objects of any kind or details of information, is to secure them if pos- sible the first time on coming in contact with them. One has it always in his power to reject what is worth- less. To go on the principle that you may come to a place where you can get them better, is an unsound one to adopt, and one that often leads to mortification. Not only do the eye and ear get accustomed to the objects or facts of search, and the hand neglects to secure them, because they no longer strike us as new, but it often happens that they are extremely local, and are never met with again. When I take up my abode in a district, for the purpose of exploring it botanically for instance, I begin by gathering the plants that grow 14 A MISSION TO VITI. around my abode, instead of rushing at once to distant parts, where no doubt fine treasures may be expected. The first day I shall probably not get any plants save the most common weeds, and most likely not venture out of sight of head-quarters. But after I have collected the objects with which under any circumstances I must become familiar, and wrould most likely fancy I had in my collection, because they wrere so common, I am able on the second and third day to venture a good deal further, and when at last I make more distant excursions, I am at least certain that in bringing home anything, I am not carrying coals to Newcastle or owls to Athens. The boys were quite indefatigable in assisting me to collect, and telling me the different local names of the plants. A great number of these names I was already acquainted with, having learnt them from the Fijian dictionary, and it did not take many weeks before I was familiar with all the vernacular nomenclature of the most generally diffused organized beings. This feat the natives could never comprehend. They thought it strange that at a time when my whole knowledge of Fijian amounted to little more than yes or no, and a few sentences absolutely forced upon me, I should be able to pronounce the names of almost anything they held up to my admiring gaze. The Lakeban boys also took us to a ravine, where some years ago Dr. Harvey, of Trinity College, Dublin, had collected a fine fern (Dipteris Horsfieldii, J. Smith), which has magnificent fan-shaped leaves, when growing in favourable situa- tions, from eight to ten feet high, and four feet across. The plant is found in all parts of Fiji, New Caledonia, BARK-CLOTH MANUFACTURE. 15 and various other islands, and has never been intro- duced into our gardens, where it would be a great orna- ment, nor did any of my specimens survive being taken out of their native soil. Mr. Fletcher showed us over the town, famous as the first spot in Fiji where Christianity was triumphant and a printing-press established. The church, constructed in native fashion, is a fine substantial building, capable of holding about two hundred and fifty people. On the open place before it was spread out one of the largest pieces of native bark-cloth I have ever seen, being about one hundred feet long and twenty feet wide. This was the only cloth worn before the recent introduction of cotton fabrics. Considering that it was manufactured without the aid of any machinery, simply by peeling the bark of the paper-mulberry, when the tree is scarcely thicker than a little finger, and then soaking and beat- ing the different pieces in such a way that they expand and all join together in one large mass, the piece was well deserving to be examined. But perhaps the most curious fact is that not only did the Fijians, as indeed most Polynesians, know how to make such cloth, but they also printed it in many different colours and pat- terns, probably exercising the art of printing ages be- fore Guttenberg, Coster, or whoever else may lay claim to its invention in Europe, were dreamt of. Was it of endemic growth, or did the Fijians derive it in some way from China, where it seems to have been practised from time immemorial I Not far from the church was the tomb of a departed chief, a series of slabs placed perpendicularly and forming 16 A MISSION TO VITI. a square filled up by mould, over which a kind of shed was erected. A dense grove of iron-wood trees, so much reminding us, by their sombre aspect, of our pines, form an appropriate accompaniment to the place. The wind playing in the branches, caused a wailing melancholy sound, fully impressing me with the idea that even the savages who planted these trees must have had some sparks of poetry in their composition. It is a strange ethnological fact, that most nations surround the tombs of those dear to them with trees belonging to the pine tribe, or at least trees partaking, as the iron-wood does, of their physiognomy. The Greeks and Turks think the cypress a befitting expression of their grief; the Chinese, the beautiful Cupressus funebris ; and the Ger- mans and English, the arbor-vitse and yew. All attempts to convince people that a graveyard ought to have as cheerful a look as such a drear lonely spot can ever be expected to assume have in the long-run proved a failure. Ivy-clad church walls, mossy tombstones, and sombre- looking yews, are in better keeping with it than gay flower-beds or bright tinsel. The mission-station at Lakeba is close to a great swamp, and cannot be very healthy. Many more salubri- ous spots might doubtless be found, but the missionary, in order to do the greatest amount of good, should live amongst his flock, and avoid every kind of isolation. He should mix with them as freely as he possibly can, and, on the principle that example is better than precept, exhibit as much of his daily family life as is compatible with necessary privacy. From that point of view, the place has been well chosen ; but it is certainly a great MISSIONARY LIFE. 17 deal to expect from an ill-paid missionary, to expatriate himself, and take up his abode in such localities as these. I felt the greatness of the sacrifice expected, on seeing here the widow of a poor fellow who had died only a short time before our arrival. Though the climate of Fiji cannot be termed unhealthy, the Wesleyans have lost a good number of their labourers in this field. In some measure this calamity may be accounted for by their having selected men physically unfit to embark in such an enterprise. Excessive zeal should not be the only qualification. To expect from the Great Giver and Pre- server of life, that it would please Him to grant a body constitutionally unqualified for the trying climate of the tropics perfect health and long life, would be a miracle, outside religious circles regarded as little short of im- piety. Nor from an economical point of view would it seem wise to go to the expense of sending out men, whose lives, on their being transferred to the tropics, would in all human probability not be worth five years' purchase. On departing, our kind friends loaded us with fresh vegetables, yams, taro, and plantains, branches of Chi- nese bananas, heaps of cocoa-nuts, lemons, eggs, and bottles full of milk, — highly acceptable presents after nearly a month at sea. Mrs. Harrison, who had been sea-sick almost the whole voyage, seemed quite to re- cover at the very sight of them, and the pleasure they caused on board much reminded me of the foraging parties we used to have amongst the Eskimos, Kam- tchadales, and American Indians, in days gone by, when, sick and tired of salt beef and pork, we would willingly c 18 A MISSION TO VITI. part with any article of barter we happened to have about us, in order to obtain fresh provisions. It was a fortunate forethought on the part of our Lakeban friends to provide us in this way, for our voyage to the next station, Wairiki, situated on the north-western shores of Taviuni, was to be rather a long one, a misfortune which we did not fail to attribute to our starting on a Friday, though the captain again pro- tested. We soon made Vuna Point, the southern ex- tremity of Taviuni, but there wrere so baffled by variable winds and dead calms, that it was deemed prudent to stand off and on, to keep clear of the reefs, which ren- der the navigation of this, as well as most parts of the Fijian group a matter of some caution. It was not until Tuesday, the 22nd of May, more than a week after our departure from Lakeba, that we entered the Strait of Somosomo, and cast anchor off Wairiki, native town and mission-station. In a general map of the world the Viti group looks an insignificant speck, and one might fancy that a boat would quickly pass from is- land to island. But how one is deceived ! The narrow channels widen into broad seas, in which the largest vessels, under proper guidance, have ample sea-room ; the little islands expand into small continents, inha- bited by untold thousands of human beings, covered with mountains often four thousand feet high, and traversed by rivers that may be followed for days with- out reaching their source. 19 CHAPTEE II. ISLAND OF TAVIUNI. — THE KINO OF CAZAUDEOVE. — ELEPHANTIASIS.— KIND OFFEE OF ME. WATEEHOUSE AND CAPTAIN WILSON. — SOMOSOMO, ITS ADVANTAGES AND DISADVANTAGES. — QUEEN ELEANOE. — ASCENT OF SUMMIT OF TAVIUNI. — A EOYAL ESCOET. — SYLVAN SCENE. — AEEIVAL AT THE TOP. SINGULAE SWAMP OF VEGETABLE TUETLE FAT. — DINNEE. TIMIDITY OF THE NATIVES. CHIEF GOLEA*S EETUEN FEOM A MILI- TAEY EXPEDITION. — POLYGAMY. — THE EOTUMA-MEN. — WAIEIKI. — AEEI- VAL OF THE ' PAUL JONES.' THE island off which we were now anchored is properly called Taviuni, erroneously Vuna by Wilkes and the latest Admiralty charts. It is the third island in size of the Vitian group, being about twenty-four miles long and nine broad, running from south-west to north-east, and being traversed by a chain of mountains about two thousand feet high, the tops of which are nearly always enveloped in clouds. Stately cocoa-nut palms gird the beach, whilst the mountain-sides are covered by dense forests full of fine timber, and abounding in wild pigeons and the Kula, a species of paroquet (Coriphilus solitarius, Latham), valued on account of its scarlet feathers, by the Tonguese, and still more by the Samoans, for ornamenting mats. Numerous streams and mountain-torrents, fed principally by a lake at the summit, descend in every direction and greatly c s 20 A MISSION TO VITI. add to the beauty of the scenery. The northern shores especially, forming in conjunction with the opposite island of Vanua Levu the Straits of Somosomo, teem with vegetation, and present a picture of extreme fertility. The trees and bushes are very thick, and everywhere overgrown by white, blue, and pink con- volvulus and other creepers, often entwined in graceful festoons. Here and there the eye descries cleared patches of cultivation, or low brushwood, overtopped by the feathery crowns of magnificent tree-ferns ; vil- lages nestling among them. The air is laden with mois- ture, and there is scarcely a day without a shower of rain. The north-western side of the island being more- over, from its geographical position, deprived of the direct action of the trade wind, the temperature feels warm when in other parts of the group it is compara- tively cool. In consequence of this, few whites have taken up their residence in Taviuni, and the mission- aries were about removing to Waikava, on Vanua Levu, nearly opposite Wairiki, where their houses would have the benefit of the trade wind and the sea breezes. Not mere fancy made them leave Wairiki. Their health was giving way, and their poor children suffered severely from a disease of the eyes. Besides, Taviuni is now thinly inhabited in comparison to formerly. The towns of Vuna, Somosomo, Weilangi, Wainikeli, and Bouma have only a small population. From Wilkes's descrip- tion, for instance, I expected to find Somosomo, in 1840, the capital of the island as well as the kingdom of Cakaudrove, a large place, instead of a mere collection of ten houses, with neither heathen temple, Christian THE KING OF CAKAUDROVE. 21 church, nor respectable strangers' house. The King of Cakaudrove, whose official title is Tui Cakau, had re- moved his court from Somosomo to Wairiki, and left the government of Somosomo to his younger brother, Golea. Tui Cakau is a miserable-looking man, without any chief-like attributes. He is below the middle height, —in the eyes of Fijians, who entertain a great con- tempt for little men, a serious blemish; suffering, be- sides, from elephantiasis and cutaneous diseases, his whole appearance is not prepossessing. Elephanti- asis, incidentally mentioned, is one of the diseases to which Fijians are subject, and a fearful sight it certainly is, when the feet assume dimensions and shapes that make them more like those of elephants than human beings. The disease, however, is gene- rally speaking, very local, and seems to be particu- larly prevalent in low, damp valleys. I remember going up a small river opposite the island of Naigani, where almost every inhabitant was afflicted by this calamity. Again, I have seen large bodies of natives, without no- ticing a single case. I have not heard of any white settlers having suffered from elephantiasis in Fiji, though it is well known that the whites in Samoa, Tahiti, or other Polynesian groups, are not free from this visita- tion. No one knowing the cause of the disease, there are of course many hypotheses respecting it. Every white man has his own, and one pretty generally dif- fused is, that it is brought on by drinking cocoa-nut milk. Yet there was a European who, acting on this belief, and scrupulously avoiding the tempting beverage, never- 22 A MISSION TO VTTI. theless became a victim, and had instantly to leave for colder climes, the only known remedy for checking its progress. Mr. Joseph Waterhouse, the chairman of the Fijian district of Wesleyan Mission, kindly asked me to take up my residence at his house during my stay in Taviuni ; but, as both himself and Mr. Carey, his coadjutor, were about to proceed to the annual meeting of their brethren in Bau, I declined the offer, and accepted instead that of Captain Wilson, my fellow-voyager from Australia. Mr. William Coxon, the captain's nephew, and manager of the cocoa-nut oil establishment which Captain Wil- son and M. Jaubert, of Sydney, had a few years ago planted at Somosomo, came in his boat to fetch us, bringing with him several Eotuma natives, who had been employed in the establishment, and were willing to work their passage in the ' John Wesley ' to Sydney, thence to watch for a vessel to their island home. The distance from Wairiki to Somosomo is only six miles, and a fine breeze soon brought us there. The water off the latter place is shallow, leaving a large flat of rocks at ebb-tide. Captain Wilson warned me not to expect any but the roughest accommodation, as no proper dwelling-house had as yet been erected. I was quite contented with what I found ; two sheds, one con- taining a hydraulic press for making oil, a large house for drying the cocoa-nuts, which also served for dry- ing my plants, and a small dwelling-house, all built in native fashion, and thatched with the leaves of the sugar-cane. A grove of stately cocoa-nut palms diffused an agreeable shade over the place, and trees laden with SOMOSOMO. 23 bread-fruit, lemons, and oranges were dotted about. Almost immediately behind the house rose a small hill of rich vegetable mould, covered with beautiful tree-ferns, over which different kinds of convolvulus —blue, white and purple — were hanging in natural garlands. Following the gravelly beach for about a hundred yards on either side of the premises, one would come to a mountain stream, splashing, foaming, and murmuring in its rocky bed, and offering capital accom- modation for bathing.* The ground, for some miles distant gently rising, passes abruptly into steeper moun- tains. There was little cleared land, though the soil is fertile, and there being few paths the woods were diffi- cult to penetrate. Fortunately a person need not be on the look-out for wild beasts, — there are none to molest him. Snakes, about four feet long, and of a light-brown colour, fre- quenting trees, especially cocoa-nut palms, to feed upon the insects attracted by the flowers, are the only animals that now and then startle him. Perhaps another source of annoyance in this earthly paradise, are the myriads of flies that follow one in the woods, and keep him con- stantly employed ; but as a set-off against this must be put the good behaviour of the mosquitoes, which are neither very numerous nor keep late hours, but leave at dusk, and do not appear again till after breakfast. Somosomo has, besides, the reputation of producing dy- sentery, which the natives, in the belief that it was un- * Here a spiny fresh- water shell I discovered abounds, called, in honour of Mr. Consul Pritchard, Neritina Pritchardii, Dohr., by one of our rising conchologists. 24 A MISSION TO V1TI. known before the visits of white men, term " the white man's disease." However, none of us were attacked by it during our stay, though we were constantly exposed to sun and rain, and ultimately out of biscuit, which served us for bread. The natives also believe dysentery catching, and hence will carefully avoid contact with a person suffering from that infliction. They will never sit down on a seat or lie down on a mat one of these invalids has occupied, and moreover often compel the poor sufferers to retire into the depths of the forests until they shall have recovered. Curiously enough, those Poly- nesian islands free from dysentery, as, for instance, the Samoan group, are visited by fever, and those free from fever, as Fiji and others, are liable to dysentery.* Chief Golea was absent on a fighting expedition to Vanua Levu, but his wife Eleanor was at home, and paid us a visit on our arrival, accompanied by two young women, also wives of Golea. Eleanor is the niece of Cakobau ( = Thakombau), King of Fiji and Chief of Bau. She is much higher in rank than her husband, who is only a younger son of a king under the suze- rainty of her uncle. Bau has always understood how to * The early stages of dysentery are easily checked by eating basinfuls of the native arrowroot (Tacca pinnatifida and sativa) so plentiful about Fiji, especially on the sandy beaches, and by avoiding bananas and plan- tains, which I quite agree with Eumphius and Forster in considering as helping to bring on this disease. The arrowroot should be made so thick that a spoon will stand upright in it, and taken with a little nutmeg, and if possible white sugar. I found no arrowroot to be so effective as that of the South Sea, and when, after my return from Fiji, I had a serious attack of dysentery in London, and was unable to get my favourite remedy, no shop having it genuine, I had an illness of several months, which nearly proved fatal. FONDNESS OF NATIVES FOR BOOKS. 25 guard against the centrifugal tendency of Fiji and pre- serve its political superiority ; and giving Bauan women of rank to petty chiefs has been one of the means em- ployed. A queen thus married would still hold the same position she did before marriage, and her sons would, as " vasus" have great privileges at Bau, and be identified with her prosperity. Eleanor was a tall, fine- looking woman, of much lighter colour than the gene- rality of her countrywomen, a cheerful countenance, and possessed of dignity and self-possession. Consider- ing the scantiness of her dress, this is saying very much in her praise. Though her husband and most of his other wives were still heathens, she was a Christian, and I believe a sincere one, judging from the almost frantic manner in which she endeavoured to obtain a Fijian Bible seen in my possession. She exhausted every argument to get it, and her joy was indescribable when her wishes were acceded to. It was much in- creased by the volume being the Viwa edition, which is preferred to the London, not only because it is a larger book and printed in the islands, but also be- cause in the recent London edition some changes have been introduced of which the natives do not approve. The Fijians are fond of books, especially large ones, even if written in languages not understood by them. Some of the whites maintain that this is simply be- cause they use them as cartridge paper, but I do not believe this to be generally the case. I had several good offers for Endlicher's 'Genera Plantarum,' and other large well-bound volumes, though never any for the bales of botanical drying-paper I carried about with 26 A MISSION TO VITI. me. Eleanor, notwithstanding her high rank, did not seem to exempt herself from any of the duties devolving upon Fijian women. I often saw her go fishing on the reef, and being up to her waist in water. One night, when all was silent, and we were sitting in the house reading and writing, we heard her call loudly for help, and on rushing down to the beach, we found that she and two other women had caught a large turtle in their net, and were holding on to the splashing animal with all their might, until assistance could be obtained. On the 30th of May, we ascended for the first time the summit of Somosomo ; Captain Wilson, Mr. Coxon, and several men kindly sent from the mission at Wairiki, accompanied us, carrying baskets, for making collec- tions. The Queen of Somosomo, hearing of our inten- tion, joined the expedition with her whole court. At daybreak we found her train waiting for us, on the banks of a river, all fully equipped for the occasion. A few strokes of the pen will describe their dress. The Queen wore two yards of white calico around her loins, fern-leaves around her head, the purple blossom of the Chinese rose in a hole pierced through one of her ears, and a bracelet made of a shell. No other garment graced her stately person, and yet she looked truly ma- jestic. Her attendants dispensed with the calico alto- gether, and were simply attired in portions of banana and cocoa-nut leaves fresh from the bush, which was so far convenient to them as they were ordered to push ahead, make a road, and shake the dew and rain from the branches obstructing the way. In our European clothes, we stood no chance in keeping up with them. A SYLVAN SCENE. 27 They were always a long distance ahead, waiting for our coming up, and enjoying themselves in opening cocoa-nuts, and smoking cigarettes, made with dry ba- nana leaves instead of paper. The ascent was rather steep, and Mr. Storck had the misfortune to hurt himself rather seriously from falling down a considerable precipice, just when in the act of gathering some botanical specimens. The road was very bad, the forest being so thick that no glimpse of the sun could fall upon a soil saturated with excessive mois- ture. Large trees and abundant underwood of small palms and tree-ferns produced a solemn gloom, and made us long for a look at the sky. Wild pigeons of a brown colour, and in very good condition for eating, there abounded, and a number were brought down by « our guns. As we were pushing on, collecting all that came in our way, and now jumping over rivulets, now climbing over rocks, we suddenly arrived at an open space, exhibiting a beautiful view of the whole Straits of Somosomo. The eye passing over a dense belt of forest, espied the islands of Rabi, Kioa, and Vanua Levu, the reefs showing very plainly by the surf breaking upon them, whitish fleeting clouds occasionally passing be- tween us and this fine panorama. The women had kindled a fire, and thought it a good place to take refreshment. The Queen was seated on the top of a rock, the maids of honour grouped around her. It was a pretty sight. The dark beauties, the really artistic effect of their ornamental leaves and flowers, the easy grace of their movements, made them look like so many nymphs that one reads of in 28 A MISSION TO VITI. classic story, but never seems to meet with nowadays. As we were taking our luncheon, the Queen asked nu- merous questions about our system of monogamy. For her part, she could never bring herself really to esteem a man contented with one wife, and she was glad her husband was a polygamist. Of course we tried to con- vince her of our way of looking upon the subject, but, having fairly refuted our assumption that women do not like to see their husband's affection distributed over a whole harem, she almost got the best of the argument. After another hour's scramble we reached the summit, and found it to all appearance a large extinct crater filled with water, and on the north-eastern part covered with a vegetable mass, so much resembling in colour and appearance the green fat of the turtle, as to have given rise to the popular belief that the fat of all the turtles eaten in Fiji is transported hither by superna- tural agency, which is the reason why on the morning after a turtle-feast the natives always feel very hungry. This jelly-like mass is several feet thick, and entirely composed of some microscopic cryptogams, which, from specimens I submitted to the Rev. M. J. Berkeley, a weighty authority in these matters, proved to be Hoomospora transversalis of Brebisson, and the repre- sentative of quite a new genus, named Hoomonema fluitanS) Berkl. A tall species of sedge was growing among them, and gave some degree of consistency to the singular body. We were not aware until it was too late that these strange productions were only floating on the top of the lake and forming a kind of crust, or else we should not have ventured upon it. On the con- DINNER AT A LAKE. 29 trary, we took it to be part of a swamp, that might safely be crossed, though not without difficulty, for we were always up to our knees, often to our hips, in this jelly. All this caused a great deal of merriment. A little hunchback, who carried a basket swinging on a stick, looked most ludicrous in his endeavours to keep pace with us. Now and then, when one or the other was trying to save himself from sinking into inextricable positions, he had to crawl like a reptile, and the others were not slow to laugh at his expense. The first symp- toms of danger were several large fissures which oc- curred in the crust we were wading through. The water in them was perfectly clear, and a line of many yards let down reached no bottom. These fissures be- came more and more numerous as wre advanced, until the vegetable mass abruptly terminated in a lake of limpid water full of eels. The border was rather more solid than the mass left behind, and all sat down to rest, from the great exertion it had required to drag ourselves for more than a mile and a half through one of the worst swamps I ever crossed. As it was getting quite a fashionable hour for dinner, and our appetite was becoming more keen every minute, we determined not to postpone it any longer; cold yams, taros, and fowls, washed down with a bottle of Australian wine mixed with water from the lake, constituted our meal. The sides of the lake were covered with scarlet myr- tles and a fine feathery palm (Kentia exorrhiza, Herm. Wendl.) closely allied to those of New Zealand and Nor- folk Island, but different. There were, besides, many other plants, too numerous to be enumerated here, that 30 A MISSION TO VITI. yielded a rich harvest. I should have liked to tarry much longer than I did, but the natives became de- sirous of returning, and as the sun was gradually de- clining, there was no retaining them. Our company dwindled down to a few faithful attendants, and even these were speedily reduced to one, Ambrose, a native teacher, and a man deservedly valued by the mission- aries. Having to be in the forest late in the evening is to the Fijians something terrible. They see ghosts and evil-intentioned spirits start up in every direction, and to escape falling victims to their anger, they yell and shout at the top of their voice, like children when left in the dark at night. We regained Somosomo, dreadfully tired and covered all over with mud, but well satisfied with our day's excursion, and it was not long before we were in bed, under two blankets, which in June and July are never found too warm in Fiji. On the 31st of May, Golea, the chief of Somosomo, returned from his fighting expedition. It was a fine scene ; six war-canoes with their large triangular sails skimming before the wind, the warriors on board, dan- cing, shouting, singing, and sounding the conch-shell. Eleanor, accompanied by the whole seraglio of the chief, hastened to the beach, in order to welcome their lord and master by clapping of hands, dancing, and sing- ing. There being no men at home, the little hunchback of Golea's establishment came breathless to our place, begging Mr. Coxon to pull the trigger of a pop-gun which was to be fired the moment his highness stepped on shore, but which no one had the courage to touch. Golea, soon after landing, paid us a visit. He was a EASY VICTORY. 31 fine man, about twenty years of age, and more than six feet high, with intelligent features, and as melodious a voice as I ever heard. Like most of his fighting-men, his face was blacked with charcoal obtained from the Qumu-tree (Acacia Michei, A. Gray). Over his luxuriant head of hair he wore the sala, made of a very fine piece of white native cloth, and looking somewhat like a turban. Around his loins he wore a narrow strip of bark-cloth, done up in the T-bandage fashion. Arms and legs were decorated with bands made of the bleached leaves of the Voivoi, a species of screw-pine ; whilst a boar's tooth, nearly circular, was suspended around his neck. Golea, flushed with victory, gave us a rather circumstantial account of his recent exploits, the first I believe he had ever been engaged in on his own ac- count, and, being a young man, he made the most of them. His object had been to punish some district of Vanua Levu for having, three years ago, killed his bro- ther. He had taken nine towns, which he assured us had been a great achievement. Soon afterwards we heard another version of the affair, according to which the inhabitants, not appreciating the idea of being clubbed, had adopted the maxim of running away in order to live to fight another day. This fully accounted for only two killed, one an old woman, the other a child ; and malice, as venomous in Fiji as elsewhere, added that even these two had only been knocked down and would probably recover. We may rejoice that no more serious calamities attended Golea's expeditions, which may be said to have closed a long line of murders. Golea's father, Tui Kilakila, in February 1854, was murdered, 32 A MISSION TO VITI. by the hands of, or, as some assert, at the instigation of, his own son, who then succeeded him to the throne of Cakaudrove. A second brother, to avenge his father's foul murder, committed fratricide, and was in his turn assassinated by the people whom Golea had just re- turned from punishing. Golea, on my asking him when he would follow his eldest brother in embracing Christianity, replied that his religion was fighting, and that he did not as yet think of becoming a disciple of the new faith. One of his great objections seemed to be its allowing him only one wife, whilst now he had an extensive harem, to which he continually made new additions. The Wes- ley ans have invariably refused to admit as members of their society, any professed native Christians who would not give up polygamy. Of course, among Protestants, any sect is at perfect liberty to adhere to whatever rules and regulations it may think fit to impose upon itself, and no words should be lost upon the discussion of it by laymen. But when taking a common-sense view of the case, whether polygamists on becoming Christians should put all save one wife away, it assumes a differ- ent aspect, which the Bishop of Natal has done good service in ventilating. To say that discarded wives of a polygamist may find husbands argues nothing ; so may fallen women of our own country. According to the lex loci, the wives enjoy a legitimate existence before the general adoption of Christianity. By declaring them il- legitimate, a serious wrong is inflicted upon them. And why do evil that good may come ? These women, sud- denly deprived of the consciousness that they are legiti- POLYGAMY. 33 mate and respectable, and, without their fault, becom- ing illegitimate and outcasts, are driven from a home to which they are bound by many ties. Had less ob- jection been offered to polygamy, far greater progress might have been made in christianizing Polynesia and many other parts of the world, where a man is esti- mated in a great measure by the number of his wives, and it becomes a serious thing to ask him to lower himself in public estimation by putting away all his wives save one. Had or were the broad principle admitted, that a man might remain a polygamist on becoming Christian, but not add to his number, many would have been induced to join the Christian community who, under present circumstances, hung back as long as they possibly could. The whole question has often presented itself; and, in the earlier stages of Christianity, the Church distinctly proclaimed the necessity of admitting polygamists. Of course, as all males born of the newly-converted would at once be- come Christians, and only be allowed to have one wife, polygamy would die out altogether in one gene- ration. I am persuaded that this is the right view to take of the subject, whatever some theologians may argue to the contrary. When at Bau, the subject of suc- cession to the throne was discussed, and the missionaries were for seeing it descend upon Cakobau's youngest son, because he was the son of his Christian wife, a boy of very tender age ; and to fix the stigma of bastardy upon his eldest son, the child of the highest woman of his household, and to whom the king was not married by Christian ritual, yet legitimately united according to D 34 A MISSION TO VITI. Fijian customs. Were the case tried before any com- petent tribunal, no doubt it would be given in favour of the eldest son, — a fine manly fellow, who would well de- serve the honour he was to be deprived of. Golea asked for grog, — -which the natives term " Ya- qona ni papalagi" or foreign Kava, — but was told that there was none in the house. He then begged to be supplied with a cup of tea, which was cheerfully given. Some of the Fijians are gradually acquiring a taste for intoxicating drinks, as most other Polynesians have done, and there is not a more painful task than to be obliged to refuse supplying them. However, I do not think that the dark-coloured races of Polynesia, including amongst others the Fijians and New Caledonians, have that intense longing for spirits characteristic of the Hawaiians, Samoans, Tonguese, and other light-coloured races, who are great slaves to it, notwithstanding all that is done to check a habit which helps so mate- rially to decimate them. Yet, whether this difference is merely owing to the fact that the former have not had such unrestricted intercourse with the whites as the latter, or whether sobriety is to them a virtue as easy to exercise as it is to the Spaniards and Italians in comparison to the Teutonic nations, the future alone will show. The lower class of whites are setting them a bad example, and one has often reason to blush for his own race. Whilst I was in the islands the first grog- shops were opened at Levuka, and several others have since been established in Bau, and other parts of the group. What has always surprised me is, that con- sidering the Fijian to be a tropical climate, most of ROTUMA MEN. 35 these great drunkards enjoy such a long life. They boast — whether it be true I had no means of testing — that they are often intoxicated two months at a time. One of the oldest white settlers always bought a large cask of spirits whenever he had the chance, and, as he did not know when he should have another, he took the daily precaution to fill up the cask with as much water as he had drunk spirits. On the 1st of June, one of the Eotuma men, work- ing in the establishment, died. His countrymen seemed to feel his loss very much, as he had been a petty chief among them, and they proceeded to bury him in their own fashion. The body was wrapped up in cloth, and a mound raised about two feet above the ground, large stones being placed all around, and the inside filled up with gravel from the beach. Rotuma is a small island three hundred miles north of this group, and belonging to the Fijian Consulate. Some years ago, the Wesleyans endeavoured to establish a permanent mission there, but, although succeeding in making a few converts, they were forced to abandon the field. The ruling chief, described as a fine young fellow, having made a voyage to Sydney, where he was well received, — even, if report be true, at Govern- ment House, — had been persuaded by some whites and a New Zealander, who gained influence over him, that if he wished to preserve the independence of his coun- try he must not admit missionaries, as they proved in- variably the harbingers of national annihilation. The Wesleyans therefore received intimation to withdraw their Tongan teachers, and the few native converts re- D 2 36 A MISSION TO VITI. turned to their former religion, the principal features of which seem to be a belief in a Supreme Being, and the worship of ancestors. The French have been more successful in the neighbouring island of Fotuna, where the Roman Catholic priests established a flourishing mission. The Eotuma men can nearly all speak a little En- glish ; they are a good-looking people, with as light a skin as the Tonguese, rich black, often curly, hair, worn very long, and regular, frequently Jewish, features. The latter peculiarity has been remarked by all who have visited Rotuma, and amongst the men working on the Somosomo estate there was one who bore the nickname of " Moses," in consequence of his undeniable resem- blance to an unadulterated Hebrew. They circumcise, tattoo around the loins, and perforate the left ear, into which they put a gay flower, or the rolled up leaf of the Dracaena terminalis. The Rotuma men are a hard- working set, and, if Fiji should become a European colony, their island will be likely to supply a good number of useful hands. I have seen them pull an oar all day long under a broiling tropical sun, or work away at the mill and oil-presses, without ever losing their good temper or complaining. True, in Somosomo they were well fed, and had as much as they liked to eat of yam, pork, or fish. Hardly a day elapsed without a pig being clubbed for their especial benefit. One of them invariably attended to the cooking, not only for the men but also for us. He gloried in the name of Koytoo, and was the youngest and best-looking of the lot, with rich curly hair, and a figure as symmetrically formed as a OUR COMMISSARIAT DEPARTMENT. 37 sculptor could desire to copy. Two yards of blue striped calico was his simple garb. When I first took up my abode under Captain Wilson's hospitable roof, Koytoo could not even be termed a plain cook. He excelled in boiling and roasting yam, and in frying pork in the European fashion, but beyond that his acquirements did not extend. It was I who gave him the benefit of the culinary experience gained during my long travels, by ini- tiating him into the mysteries of making coffee, tea, pan- cakes (without eggs), fritters, chicken and turtle soup. For a yard of calico the Queen would sell us six fowls in the bush; but here we found how true was the old pro- verb, "A bird in the hand is worth two in the bush." As will be explained in another place, the Fijian fowls are far from being domesticated; they are to all intents and purposes wild. Now and then they show themselves near the dwellings, to pick up the offal, but as soon as any one makes an attempt to catch them they are off, and the only expedient to get them is by shooting. In the tropics, to eat day after day pork and yam, the usual food of Fiji, is not very tempting, and we there- fore endeavoured to introduce some diversity into our mode of living, by obtaining as many fowls as we could. Often and often did Messrs. Storck and Coxon leave their, I cannot say soft, couch at dawn to have a crack at them ; but the birds were so cunning that no sooner did they creep near the place whence the crowing pro- ceeded, than they were silent or had decamped. Eggs were but seldom seen. The Fijians consider it babyish to eat them, and cannot be induced to look for them. The turtle-flesh was always sent to us as a present, either A MISSION TO VITI. from the chief or his head wife, and after I had in- structed Koytoo into the mysteries of concocting it into soup, with which neither he nor the Fijians were pre- viously acquainted, the chief would never fail to appear at the very moment the soup was put on our table. In fact there were always boys of his loitering about the kitchen, eagerly watching the moment that it was ready, and then running as fast as they could to inform their chief of the important event. Koytoo was an expert climber, and thought nothing of ascending a tree to collect some specimens of flower or fruit for me. We often made excursions together, and I have frequently admired the way in which he would walk up the smooth trunk of a tall cocoa-nut palm, in order to knock down a few fruits for refreshing ourselves. Without closely embracing the tree, as we are wont to do in climbing, he actually walked up, his feet and hands just touching the trunk, and his body being far off. He was scarcely seated on the leaves forming the feathery crown of the palm, when down came a number of nuts, all of which he had carefully tapped with his fingers to ascertain by the sound whether they had arrived at that stage of maturity which I preferred for drinking ; for there is a great difference in the taste of the cocoa-nut as it advances towards maturity, and for every one of these stages the natives have a distinct term. What is yet still more remarkable, they at once know the stage by merely tapping at the nut with their fingers. As the transition from one stage to another, from insipid to sweet, and very slightly acid, is brought about in a day KOROVONO AND ITS FORESTS. 39 or so, it requires a well-trained ear to detect the diffe- rence, and, though trying very hard, I never could mas- ter it. No sooner were the nuts down than Koytoo stood again on terra firma, cutting a stick about three feet long and one inch thick, which he placed obliquely in the ground, and used for shelling the nuts. Thus di- vested of their thick outer fibrous covering, the hard shell of one nut was used as a hammer for knocking a hole in the other, and so nicely was this done, that the hole was hardly larger than a shilling, and scarcely a drop of the milk was spilt. We used to empty a great number of nuts in this state without ever experiencing any bad effects. We who wear clothes ought to have a steady hand, for should any of the milk be spilt, it will, on running over the few remaining fibres of the husk, become astringent, and produce an indelible stain in linen and cotton, having exactly the appearance of iron-mould. On the 4th of June, I paid a visit to Korovono, on Vanua Levu, Mrs. Waterhouse obligingly lending me the mission boat and crew to take me across the Straits of Somosomo. My object was to examine the Kowrie pines and wild nutmegs of that place. We left Somo- somo early in the morning, and reached our destination at three o'clock in the afternoon. Jetro, an old Manila man, who had come to Fiji years ago, and spoke Spanish with some difficulty, met us on the beach, and conducted us to a fine grove of Kowrie pines (Dammara Vitiensis, Seem.) shortly to fall a prey to the axe. European sawyers had already cut down a number of the best trees, yet some good specimens were still standing, and 40 A MISSION TO vnr. I took exact measurements of them. They were from eighty to a hundred feet high, and, four feet above the base ; the largest was eighteen feet in circumference ! The Fijian Kowrie, or Dakua, as the natives term it, does not form entire forests by itself, like some of our pines, but grows intermingled with other trees, in Koro- vono with myrtles and wild nutmegs. These nutmegs are also stately trees, with fine oblong leaves ; and their produce, though it will never be able to enter into com- petition with the cultivated nutmeg of the East Indies, is sufficiently aromatic to be employed for home consumption. One of the men climbed up the highest Kowrie pines by means of a creeper, that hung like a rope from the uppermost branches, and he threw down a good supply of fruit, and also a snake five feet long, which had taken up its abode there. On returning to the beach we kindled a fire to make a cup of tea, and the natives brought us plenty of cocoa-nuts and bananas. Our camp was pitched under a couple of magnificent Dilo trees (Calophyllum ino- phyllum^ Linn.) the thick, glossy, green foliage of which was set off to advantage by the numerous white blos- soms with which the tree was crowded. The branches, densely covered with ferns and orchids, were quite over- hanging the water; indeed all the beaches of the Strait of Somosomo are characterized by this pecu- liarity. The vegetation, instead of receding from the sea, as in most parts of the group, is quite bent over the briny fluid. We had intended to stop for the night at Korovono, but at dusk the mosquitoes began to be very troublesome, and, as we had omitted to bring cur- DIFFICULTIES OF ASCERTAINING THE TRUTH. 41 tains for our protection, sleep would have been out of the question. A council of war being held, it was thought preferable, notwithstanding the wind being dead against us, to beat out of the bay and pull the rest of the way. Leaving without further delay, we passed, about midnight, Kioa, or Owen Island, as it is sometimes called, from having become the property of Mr. Owen, an enterprising Australian gentleman, who endeavoured to form a settlement on it. Mr. Owen was for some time a member of the Victorian Legisla- ture, at Melbourne, where he was often alluded to as " Member for Fiji." Though taking advantage of every slight breeze, we had to be at sea all night and did not reach Somosomo until six o'clock the next morning, and were heartily glad when Koytoo, the Rotuma cook, brought the breakfast, as usual consisting of yams, pork, and coffee. On the 5th of June, a small island schooner came in belonging to a half-caste, and manned by a crew of the same mixed origin. They brought all the news of the group, and complained bitterly of the missionaries in- juring their trade by inducing the natives to contribute cocoa-nut oil towards the support of the Wesleyan So- ciety, an article which formerly passed direct into the hands of the small traders. When a native became Christian, he was made to give every three months eight gallons of oil, or thirty-two a year, equal to £4 sterling. Notice was given a few days before the oil was due ; and when a trader visited a place he found none but empty casks, — the church had swallowed it all up. This statement, like many others heard in the islands, 42 A MISSION TO VITI. I found only partially true ; indeed, I have never been in a country where it is more difficult to arrive at real facts than Fiji. To say nothing about those who make it a point to diffuse absolute untruths, nearly everybody seems to rejoice in overstating a case or giving a most partial version of it ; and it requires no slight discrimi- nation to keep on good terms with those with whom one wishes to stand well, so fearfully rampant is the gossip. The most outrageous stories were unblushingly circulated about the different consuls and missionaries ; and sometimes I felt hot and cold, while having to be an unwilling listener to scandal of this description. People in civilized countries do not know how much they owe to the laws that protect them, at least against the grossest libels. Talk of village scandal, it is nothing to it. Of course, in a society of whites so limited, this state of affairs might be expected, but a new feature in the history of gossip is that all the tittle-tattle of the other groups of the Pacific was dealt out as so many delicious morsels in Fiji. The doings of known per- sonages in Tahiti, Samoa, and Tonga were discussed with avidity. Fancy, we in Europe troubling ourselves with the small talk of places more than a thousand miles distant. Before the arrival of the British consul, several of these small island schooners carried on a profitable traf- fic in human beings. They used to go to the large islands, and purchase young women, for whom from five to ten dollars in barter were usually given. These women were sold again to whites in other parts of the group, often for fifty dollars each. Several women were pointed WAIRIKI. 43 out to me as having been bought in this way to be- come housekeepers of European settlers, and, as their new lords and masters clothed, fed, and treated them better than their Fijian, they had cheerfully stayed with them. Mr. Pritchard's presence has in a great measure put a stop to these and to several other iniquities, or at all events prevented their being carried on in open day- light; but until the home government shall think fit to lighten the consul's duties, by placing a fast-sailing schooner at his disposal, and allow him some abler as- sistance than he has hitherto obtained from his clerks, similar shortcomings must be expected. On the 12th of June I went for a few days to Wairiki. The premises occupied by the mission of that place are very commodious ; there are two large dwelling-houses, built about two hundred yards apart, one occupied by Mr. Waterhouse, the other by Mr. Carey. On the second day of my stay there, those two gentlemen returned from Bau, bringing a message from Mr. Pritchard, the British consul, to the effect that Colonel S my the had as yet not arrived, and that a little schooner should be sent for me, in case I did not reach Ovalau by the 12th instant. Mr. Carey showed me his collection of native curiosities, including a fine set of clubs, spears, bows, and arrows. I also saw here for the first time a fan made of the leaf of a beautiful palm, a tree which had proved quite new to science, and which in honour of Mr. Pritchard, and as a grateful acknowledgment of the invaluable assistance he rendered to me, the name of PritcJiardia pacifica has been given by Mr. Wend- land and myself, — the specific name being justified by 44 A MISSION TO VITI. its growing in various groups of the Pacific, and Mr. Pritchard's untiring efforts to preserve the peace of that region. Fans made of this palm are used exclusively by the chiefs, and forbidden to be carried by the com- mon people. Should Fiji ever choose a national em- blem, the claims of this palm to be regarded as such, should not be overlooked. Mrs. Waterhouse made me a present of an Orange Cowry, or Bulikula as the natives term it (Cyprcea aurantium, Martyn), the first I had seen there. This shell has hitherto been found exclusively in Fiji, where it is confined to the islands and shores of North-west Viti Levu ; it is worn as an ornament around the neck by natives of rank. Not many years ago, a couple of these cowries would fetch as much as £50 in Eu- rope, but at present a pair without the least flaw, and of the deepest tint the shell is known to assume, may be bought in London for £6. Hugh Cuming, Esq., the possessor of the largest conchological collection ever brought together, is my authority. This statement will doubtless be received with surprise by the Fijian traders, who ask a much higher price on the spot, and still fancy great profits might be realized, in the Euro- pean markets. It should however be remembered, that though the Orange Cowry is extremely local in its geo- graphical range, and will consequently always be a rare shell, specimens have found their way to every public museum and every private cabinet of importance long ere this, and the principal demand having thus been met, the price has necessarily declined. The road from Wairiki to Somosomo leads for seve- A KITE. THE 'PAUL JONES.' 45 ral miles along a fine sandy beach, underneath a bower of stately trees, and then branches off inland. I passed magnificent groves of Tahitian chestnuts (Inocarpus edulis, Forst), growing on the banks of rivulets and diffusing a delightful shade and coolness, whilst their grooved trunk and knobby root, always rising above the ground, are conspicuous objects. Although it was now the dry season, nevertheless I was completely drenched by several showers. Indeed there were few fine days during the whole time I was staying in Taviuni, and I may as well add that 1860 was as unusually wet in Fiji as that year proved in Europe and other countries. The land between Wairiki and Somosomo does not appear to be very rich, the soil being rather stony ; the extreme luxuriance of the vegetation must therefore principally be ascribed to the great quantity of rain that falls almost throughout the year. One day, Messrs. Storck and Coxon made a large kite, to the great amusement and entertainment of the Fi- jians, who, chief and all, turned out to see it. They called it a " manumanu " (bird), and had never beheld such a thing before ; our Rotuma men, however, said they knew it, and in their island often made it of Ivi (Inocarpus) leaves. Great was the joy when the "postilions" reached their destination, and, as there was a fine breeze, the trick was always successful. So much were they gratified that they came for several days in succession to beg that the kite might be brought out, till at last the toy got such a bore that the makers were obliged to destroy it. In accordance with my request, Mr. Consul Pritchard 46 A MISSION TO VITI. sent, on the 19th of June, the 'Paul Jones,' a schooner of nine tons, — huilt in the islands by Mr. Jones, an Eng- lishman formerly residing at Levuka, — and entirely of native woods, Dilo (Calophyllum inophyllum, Linn.) and Vaivai (Serianthes Vitiensis, A. Gray), with masts of Fi- jian Kowrie-pine. The crew were all half-castes, mostly sons of Englishmen who had taken up their residence in Fiji. They could speak English more or less flu- ently, having had some instruction at the different missionary schools. The late Mr. Hunt, one of the most distinguished champions of Christianity in these parts, seemed to have taken considerable interest in their education, and they always spoke in the highest terms of him. It was amusing to hear some of their English. In Fijian, B, N, and G, are combinations of two distinct consonants, sounding like Mb, Nd, and Ng. Joe, our cook, a very good-natured fellow, had the greatest difficulty in steering clear of these letters. In spite of all our pains, he would insist in telling us that the " yams were quite ndone," and that "mbreaJcfast was ready." The captain of the ' Paul Jones ' brought a letter from the consul informing me that Colonel Smythe had not yet arrived, and advising me to hasten my depar- ture from Somosomo if I wished to take advantage of an excursion he had arranged to the dominions of Kuru- duadua, a powerful heathen chief, hitherto inaccessible to all missionary influence, and residing on the large island of Viti Levu. My mind was at once made up. In a few hours, all my baggage was packed, and embarked. During my stay at Somosomo, many of my things had FIJIAN HONESTY. 47 been left in an open shed, and in boxes that could not be locked every time they had to be opened ; yet I did not lose a single article, though the hatchets, knives, and cotton prints must have been invaluable in the eyes of the natives. On the whole, the Fijians confirm Cap- tain Cook's opinion, according to which the light- coloured Polynesians have thievish propensities, the dark-coloured not. The Tannese, a dark-coloured race, he must either have looked upon as an exception to his rule, or else they must not have been in those days the set of expert thieves they are at present. The extreme fertility of the soil about Somosomo in- duced me to establish there an experimental cotton plan- tation ; and before fairly embarking on board the ' Paul Jones ' for Ovalau, I must insert a short chapter on cotton, which those who think it a subject no amount of literary skill can make attractive, may skip without losing the thread of the general narrative. 48 CHAPTEE III. FIJI AS A COTTON-GROWING COUNTBY. — COTTON NOT INDIGENOUS BUT NA- TUEALIZED. — NATIVE NAMES. NUMBER OF SPECIES. AVERAGE PRODUCE OF THE WILD COTTON. EXCELLENCE OF FIJIAN COTTON ACKNOWLEDGED AT MANCHESTER. EFFORTS OF BRITISH CONSUL AND MISSIONARIES TO EXTEND ITS CULTIVATION. — THE FIRST THOUSAND POUNDS OF COTTON SENT HOME. ESTABLISHMENT OF A PLANTATION AT SOMOSOMO, WAKAYA AND NUKUMOTO. — PROSPECTS OF COTTON-GROWING IN FIJI. COTTON was one of the subjects to which attention was principally directed by my instructions ; and I have en- deavoured to collect every information which might prove useful in forming a correct estimate of the Fijis as a cotton-growing country. If I understand the na- ture and requirements of cotton aright, the Fijis seem to be as if made for it. In the whole group there is scarcely a rod of ground that might not be cultivated, or has not at one time or other produced a crop of some kind, the soil being of an average amount of fertility, and in some parts rich in the extreme. Cotton re- quires a gently undulated surface, slopes of hills rather than flat land. The whole country, the deltas of the great rivers excepted, is a succession of hills and dales, covered on the weather-side with a luxuriant herbage or dense forest ; on the lee-side with grass and isolated screw-pines, more immediately available for planting. A FIRST-KATE COTTON-GROWING COUNTRY. 49 Cotton wants sea-air. What country would answer this requirement better than a group of more than two hun- dred islands surrounded by the ocean as a convenient highway to even small boats and canoes, since the un- checked force of the winds and waves is broken by the natural breakwater presented by the reefs which nearly encircle the whole? Cotton requires, further, to be fanned by gentle breezes when growing, and a comparatively low temperature ; there is scarcely ever a calm, either the north-east or the south-east trade- wind blowing over the islands keeps up a constant current, and the thermometer for months vacillates between 62° and 80° JFahrenheit, and never rises to the height at- tained in some parts of tropical Asia, Africa, or Ame- rica. In fine, every condition required to favour the growth of this important production seems to be pro- vided, and it is hardly possible to add anything more in order to impress those best qualified to judge with a bet- ter idea of Fiji as a first-rate cotton-growing country. Cotton is not indigenous in any part of the group. Independent of its introduction being alluded to in va- rious works as having taken place in the early part of this century, there is no proper vernacular name for it. In all such cases, the Fijian language borrows that of an indigenous plant resembling the introduced one as closely as possible ; thus the Cassava root received the name of " Yabia ni papalagi " (i. e. foreign arrowroot), the bird's-eye pepper that of "Boro ni papalagi" (i.e. foreign nightshade), and the pine-apple that of " Ba- lawa ni papalagi" (i.e. foreign screw-pine). By the same rule, cotton became known as "Vauvau ni papalagi" E 50 A MISSION TO VITI. (i. e. foreign Vauvau), from its close resemblance to the Bele, or Vauvau (Hibiscus [Abelmoschus~] Manihot, Linn.), a cultivated species, the leaves of which are eaten as a potherb. It is true that when foreigners speak about "Vauvau" the natives of the coast know cotton is meant, but in districts where cotton has not yet penetrated, as for instance at Namosi, Viti Levu, one is sure to get the edible Hibiscus, if Vauvau, without adding "ni papalagi" (foreign), be asked for.* Yet, notwithstanding cotton being undoubtedly an introduced plant, and although until lately no attention whatever was paid to its cultivation, it has spread over all the littoral parts of Fiji, and become in some locali- ties perfectly naturalized. Six different kinds have come to my knowledge, all of which are shrubby, and pro- duce flower and fruit throughout the whole year, though the greater number of pods arrive at maturity during the dry season, from June to September. There are two kinds of kidney-cotton, one ( Gossypium Peruvianum, Cav.) having naked, the other (Gossypium sp. nov.?) mossy seeds. A third kind ( Gossypium Barbadense, Linn. ) has disconnected naked seeds ; a fourth ( Gossypium ar- boreum, Linn.) has disconnected seeds covered with a greenish moss and long staple ; a fifth is probably an inferior variety of the preceding one, and only differs from it in the length of the staple ; and a sixth ( Gossy- pium religiosum, Linn.), being the Nankin cotton, valua- ble only in certain foreign markets. The four first-men- * In Tahiti Gossypium Barbadense is known as " Vavau," a name evi- dently identical with the Fijian " Vauvau." Nankin cotton (G. religiosum) was found wild in Tahiti by Forster. YIELD OF WILD COTTON. 51 tioned kinds, especially Gossypium Perumanum and Gos- sypium arloreum, are the most frequent in the group ; the fifth seems confined to Laselase, some miles from Namosi ; and the sixth (Nankin) has been met with on Kadavu by Mr. Pritchard, and on the Rakiraki coast by Colonel Smythe. There is scarcely any difference in the look of the four first-mentioned kinds which a person not botani- cally trained could readily detect. Left to themselves, and never subjected to the pruning knife, these cotton shrubs become as high as a tall man can reach, and each shrub spreads over a surface of about fourteen feet square. I have had no opportunity of counting the number of pods produced throughout the year by a single specimen, but that found in July was on the average seven hundred per plant. Twenty pods of cleaned cotton weighed 1 oz. ; thus each plant would yield 2 Ibs. 3 oz. Allowing fourteen feet square for each plant, an acre would hold 222 plants, yielding at the rate of 2 Ibs. 3 oz. per individual plant, 485 Ibs. 10 oz. Even fixing the price of sorts, worth more than Is. at Manchester, as low as 6d. per pound on the spot, an acre would realize £12. 2s. 9f d. When it is borne in mind that Fijian cotton brings forth ripe fruit with- out intermission throughout the year, but that this cal- culation is based solely upon the number of pods found at one time only, and that the pods were gathered from plants upon which no attention whatever had been be- stowed, the result will be still more striking; double, even treble the above quantity may safely be calculated upon as their annual crop. When it is further remem- E 2 52 A MISSION TO VITI. bered that Fijian cotton is not an annual, as it is in the United States, and all other countries, when killed by frost or too low a temperature, and that the plants will continue to yield for several years without requiring any other attention than keeping them free from weedy creepers and pruning them periodically, the encourage- ment held out to cultivators will be pronounced very great. Until the excellence of Fijian cotton had been ac- knowledged at Manchester, and the mercantile value of the different sorts been ascertained to be Id. to 7^ being established, the success of this and similar attempts will chiefly depend upon the supply of manual labour. Those best acquainted with the condition of the group, and the character of its people, confidently look forward to a steady supply of it. In Rewa, Ovalau, and other dis- tricts longest frequented by whites, the natives go round asking for employment. This is quite an innovation, and shows that the Fijian is becoming gradually accus- tomed to labour for fixed wages ; and, when the chiefs shall have either voluntarily relinquished or been com- pelled to give up their claim to all the property ac- 56 A MISSION TO VITI. cumulated by the lower classes, a favourable result will be the immediate consequence, and a fresh impulse be imparted to all branches of industry. Let the common people once be assured that nobody can legally take their fair earnings away from them, and that the little comforts with which they have managed to surround themselves may be openly displayed without the dan- ger of being coveted by the chiefs and their favourites, and they will doubtless be eager to engage in any work that does not require any great mechanical skill or violent exertion, and at the same time will yield them reasonable returns.* * Whilst these sheets were passing through the press, the Fijian contri- bution to the Great Exhibition of 1862 has arrived, which Mr. Consul Pritchard, in a letter to me, dated Levuka, Fiji, March 12th, 1862, accom- panies with explanations, of which the following have an important bearing upon the cotton question : — " The box No. 1 contains eight samples of cotton. Of these samples, No. 1 is New Orleans cotton, from the planta- tion you established at Somosomo, which since your departure has been sadly neglected; the trees are half withered and overgrown with bush, and I fear the quality has much deteriorated. No. 2 is kidney cotton, grown by Mr. Storck on his plantation at Nukumoto (Eewa Eiver). It was planted in July and gathered in December last. No. 3 is kidney cot- ton, native-grown at Eewa. No. 4 is native-grown, from Burebasaga (Eewa Eiver). No. 5 is Sea Island cotton, grown on Nukulau, the little island in the Eewa roads, and planted by an Englishman, Mr. Smytherman, in January, and collected in August, 1861." I should here add, that Mr. M'Clintock, nephew of Sir Leopold M'Clintock, sowed some Sea Island cotton at Eewa ; in twenty-four hours it was up, with the first two leaves quite open ; in two months and twelve days it was in full blossom, and is now almost ready to gather, not having been planted three months ! " No. 7 is from Mr. Eggerstrom's plantation at Nagara, and was gathered four months after planting. No. 8 is native-grown." Sea Island cotton delights in sandy soil impregnated with saline par- ticles, and localities wafted by sea-breezes, such as Eewa and Nukulau are. With the high prices now commanded by this kind, and the prospect of continuance of civil wars in the United States, speculators would find it highly remunerative to hire or purchase land about Eewa, or localities simi- larly situated, for the cultivation of Sea Island cotton. EXCELLENCE OF FIJIAN COTTON. 57 It is well known, both from public journals and the 'Correspondence relating to the Fiji Islands,' presented by command of her Majesty to both Houses of Parliament, May, 1862, that from samples submitted by Mr. Pritch- ard, the Executive Committee of the Manchester Cotton Supply Association resolved, " That these samples are of qualities most desirable for British manufacture; that such a range of excellent cotton is scarcely now received from any cotton-growing country ; and that the supply obtained from the United States does not realize nearly so high an average value as this Fijian cotton." It must be borne in mind, that these and similar opinions were arrived at in 1859, long before my visit to the is- lands and the publication of the favourable report I made.* Doubtless the same Committee would now be prepared to pronounce a still higher opinion, if that were possible. The Fijian samples sent to the Great Exhibi- tion of 1862 would furnish capital material for renewed examination, and amongst them would be found some of Sea Island cotton, the sort which, having the largest staple and fetching the highest price, was hitherto ex- clusively grown in perfection on the coast of South Carolina, Georgia, and a small part of Florida. Fiji has now supplied every sort of cotton, from the cheapest to the very best, and capitalists would do well in direct- ing their attention to it. * My report was sent by the Colonial Office to Manchester, and first published in No. 71 of the ' Cotton Supply Eeporter,' of August 1st, 1861. 58 CHAPTEE IV. DEPAETUEE FEOM SOMOSOMO. — ISLAND OF WAKAYA. — THE BALOLO. — ARRI- VAL AT LEVUKA. H.B.M. CONSUL. THE LATE MR. WILLIAMS. LADO AND ITS ORIGIN. — SITE FOE THE NEW CAPITAL. — THE KING OF FIJI. — BAU. CAUSES OF ITS SUPEEMACY. VIWA. THE 'Paul Jones' had been seven days on her voyage from Port Kinnaird to Somosomo, having had to beat up, but in going back she had a fair though not a very strong wind. We left Somosomo in the afternoon of the 20th of June, and called at Wairiki to wish good-bye to the missionaries, and return them several articles they had kindly lent us. The first night we anchored in a small bay on the southern coast of Vanua Levu, and went on shore the next morning to botanize. The town, built near a great swamp, consists of about forty houses. We had scarcely shown our white faces in the first house when all the little children set up a perfect scream, and nothing their parents said or did could pa- cify them. If they had seen the " old gentleman " him- self in proprid persona, they could not have been more frightened. The piercing screams brought children of all the other houses out, till the whole formed one great yelling chorus, so terribly grating on our ears that we made all possible haste to escape into the woods. Our WAKAYA. 59 excursion produced several plants not previously noticed, and also resulted in the discovery of an entirely new genus of Ehamnacece, which I have called, in honour of Colonel Smythe, R.A., Smythea pacifica.* Steering in a south-westerly direction, we sighted the island of Koro, or Goro as some charts erroneously term it, where an immense number of yams are grown, and the souls of all the pigs killed in the group are supposed to go. A little further on we passed Wakaya, a small island belonging to Dr. Brower, and the site of a settle- ment chiefly composed of half-castes, who, besides at- tending to the sheep and cattle, look after the planta- tions of sugar, coffee, and cotton the enterprising Doc- tor has established. The most remarkable fact con- nected with Wakaya is its being one of the places where the Balolo, a curious annelidan, makes its periodi- cal appearance. Of the very existence of this singular animal naturalists knew nothing, until a few years ago Dr. Gray, of the British Museum, described it under the name of Palolo viridis, adopting its Samoan and Tonguese vernacular name for the genus ; and Dr. Mac- donald wrote on its anatomy. The time when the Ba- lolo comes in may be termed the Fijian whitebait season. It is watched for with the greatest anxiety, and predicted with unerring certainty from the phases of the moon. The first of these worm-like creatures floating on the surface of the ocean are seen in October, * A coloured plate and a full description of this singular genus, closely allied to Ventilago, with which it agrees in habit to a remarkable degree, but differing by having a veritable dehiscent capsule, instead of a drupe, has been published in ' Bonplandia,' vol. x. p. 69, tab. 9. Additional par- ticulars will be found in my ' Flora Yitiensis.' 60 A MISSION TO VITI. hence termed Vula i Balolo lailai, i. e. the little Balolo month. Myriads appear about the latter end of No- vember, generally on the 25th, which from that fact is known as the Vula i Balolo levu, or great Balolo month ; and the natives of the coast are particularly busy in catching and forwarding the delicacy of the season to friends residing in places deprived of it, — presents all the more appreciated as a whole year must elapse be- fore the same boon can again be conferred. In a letter dated Levuka, Fiji, December 6th, 1861, and addressed to her friends, an English lady gives the following account : — " In November we all went for a few days to Wakaya, about ten miles east-north-east from Ovalau, in order to see the Balolos, which rise out of the reefs just before daylight, first in small numbers, but about sunrise in such masses that the sea looks more solid than liquid. As they were to appear on the morning of the 25th, we retired to rest at an early hour the night before, and rose with the moon, about one o'clock in the morning. An hour's pull in the whale boat brought us to the very spot they were to come. We found several natives already collected there in boats and canoes, all anxiously looking out who should get the first. This they discovered by sitting with their hands in the water as the canoe was gently paddled about. Presently there was great shouting, — nets were put out, the excitement commenced. At first our nets did very well, but soon the Balolos became too numerous for them to be of any use, and they were caught by the hand and thrown into the baskets with which the boats were filled. We placed a white handkerchief about THE BALOLO. 61 four inches below the surface of the water, but the little creatures were so thick above it that it was quite invisible. At first I could not make up my mind to touch them, but seeing every one else doing so, I sum- moned up all my courage, plunged in my hands, and grasped a goodish number, of which, however, I got rid as quickly as possible. The little slimy things twist round the hand in half a second. They are, of course, perfectly harmless, swim very fast, and the longer ones have sometimes five or six coils in the body. When at the thickest they are all entangled one in another, which gives a very curious appearance, as they are of various colours, green, red, brown, and sometimes white. As the sun gains power they dissolve, and about eight or nine o'clock you scarcely find one. It is always in November they come in such masses, just after the last quartering of the moon, and they rise with the tide. As soon as the natives have gathered all they can, they make fires and ovens to cook them. Small quantities of Balolos are tied up in bread-fruit leaves, and have to lie in the oven from twelve to eighteen hours. When all is cooked, the natives expect a heavy shower of rain, as they say to put out the fires of their ovens. Should there be no rain, a bad yam season is predicted." Several of the white residents eat Balolo, and a strong-minded English lady assured me it was quite a relish ; however, everybody knows the old proverb, " De gustibus," etc., and if in the Samoan, Tongan, Fijian, or New Hebrides group — in all of which the Balolo is found — a dish of this description should be served up, strangers must exercise their own discretion whether 62 A MISSION TO VITI. The Balolo (Palolo viridis, E. Gray). — Pig. 1. The entire animal, na- tural size ; 2. Portion of the body slightly magnified ; 3. Magnified figure of the head, with its three frontal tentacula and eyes ; the position of the retracted jaws is shown in the central dark space behind the tentacula ; 4. Posterior extremity of the Balolo, dorsal aspect ; figures 3 and 4 copied from Macdonald's paper in ' Linnean Transactions,' xxii. THE BALOLO. 63 these little, creeping, crawling things, with their cylin- drical, jointed body, are a delicacy to be recommended or a nuisance to be avoided. The most singular portion of the natural history of the Balolo is the regularity of its periodical appearance. About Hanover I have often observed devout Roman Catholics going on the morning of St. John's day to neighbouring sandhills, gathering on the roots of herbs a certain insect (Coccus Polonica) looking like drops of blood, and thought by them to be created on purpose to keep alive the remembrance of the foul murder of St. John the Baptist, and only to be met with on the morning of the day set apart for him by the Church. I believe the life of this insect is very ephemeral, but by no means restricted to the 24th of June. But there is an Australian bird (Psittacus undulatus) which is known to lay its eggs always on the 17th and 19th of Decem- ber, and forms another instance of certain actions in the life of an animal being performed, with unerring cer- tainty, on particular days. On the 22nd, at four P.M., we entered the harbour of Levuka, the principal port of the island of Ovalau. Captain Wilson, who had left Somosomo a few days be- fore me, was standing at the beach, and conducted me to the office of the British Consulate, where I found Mr. William Pritchard, by whom the cession of Fiji to England has been brought about, and to whom I deli- vered a letter from Earl Russell. Mr. Pritchard is the son of the Rev. George Pritchard, formerly British Con- sul at Tahiti, at the time when the French, against the wish and will of the natives, assumed the protectorate 64 A MISSION TO VITI. of that group, treated Queen Pomare with unusual harshness, and the British representative in a manner that nearly brought about a war between France and England. Born in Tahiti, and thoroughly acquainted with the Samoan and most other Polynesian groups, Mr. Pritchard enjoys the peculiar advantage of being per- fectly familiar with all native modes of thought. During my stay in Fiji I had frequent opportunities to see how successfully he was able to deal with these islanders, whenever any difficulty arose. We called together on Mr. Binner, who has for years filled the office of training-master to the Wesleyan mission at Levuka, and also manages the commercial affairs of this religious society in Fiji. We thence went to Dr. Brower, the American Vice-Consul, who received me with great kindness, and whenever I visited Levuka I always took up my quarters under his hospitable roof. Mr. Williams, the American Consul, had died a few days before my arrival. I should have liked to have seen him, in order to form an independent estimate of a man about whom so many contradictory statements were afloat. He did not live on good terms with the missionaries, and controversies were carried on between them in the Australian and American newspapers, which, as is usual in such cases, proved advantageous to neither party. Mr. Williams bought considerable tracts of land, and it was maintained that the purchase was not in all instances a fair one, and that the na- tives had only from fear of American men-of-war given their assent to these transactions. It is impossible to say whether in all cases the sellers were satisfied with LADO. 65 the bargain ; yet I remember, quite in the interior of Viti Levu, Chief Kuruduadua publicly declaring at an official meeting that his brother had sold land to Mr. Williams, and that he, regarding the purchase as valid, had no wish to dispute it. This was a great deal from a man like Kuruduadua, who had a violent dislike to Americans, as some of them had burnt Navua, his sea- side residence, a few years previously. Towards the natives Mr. Williams appears to have been very kind, and would not refuse them anything. I heard of a bet which a chief made, that he would obtain a water- proof coat just sent out to Mr. Williams, merely by asking for it, and which was won by him who trusted in Mr. Williams's generosity. The whole of the land on which the mission-station at Mataisuva is built, an extensive piece of ground, was presented by Mr. Wil- liams to the Wesleyan body at the very time when some of their members were engaged in the hottest po- lemical struggle with him. Dispatching my collections made in the eastern parts of the group by a vessel about to sail for Sydney, I started with Mr. Pritchard, in the consular gig, for Lado alewa, a little rocky islet on the western side of the island of Ovalau, which we reached about sunset, after a sail of about an hour and a half, and which Mr. Pritchard kindly invited me to look upon as my home during my stay in the islands. Let me tell the history of this rock : — Once upon a time, a god and goddess, who rejoiced in the name of Lado (= Lando) were directed to block up the Motn- riki passage leading into Port Kinnaird and the Bau 66 A MISSION TO VITI. waters, in order to stop the rolling surf from disturbing the nightly repose of the great Fijian deities. They resolutely set about it; but having, in common with other spiritual beings, a decided objection to daylight, they threw the two enormous rocks collected for that purpose in the middle of Port Kinnaird as soon as they began to " smell the morn ;" or, according to an- other version, their noble selves became changed into rocks, as were the villagers in the Bohemian legend of Hans Heiling, — now bearing the names of Lado alewa, the female Lado ; and Lado tagane, the male Lado. The latter version seems to be the most rational, — if reason has anything to do with such things, — for once transformed into stone the two spirits were unable to stir again, whilst, if they had merely thrown down their burden, they might have been made to resume their labours, like Sisyphus of old. However, be that as it may, the fact is, that we were now on the rock identified with the name of the goddess — the larger of the two; and I trust that whatever intentions the Fijian Olympus may formerly have entertained re- specting the two Lados in general, and the one we had landed on in particular, they will reconsider the ques- tion since the British colours wave on the summit of this islet. The rocky slopes have been transformed into terraces of flowers, and a neat European-built cot- tage, with broad verandah, and a roof thatched with sugar-cane leaves, contained the archives of the British Consulate. The natives looked upon this house as a perfect marvel of art ; the windows, papered rooms, and above all, the staircase, — the first ever made in Fiji, PORT KINNAIRD. 67 —proved a source of never-failing curiosity and admi- ration. Miss Pritchard made tea in the English fashion, which I thoroughly enjoyed, after being so long com- pelled to take it from the hands of rude natives. A room was given up to me, and every comfort Fiji af- forded was bestowed upon me. To sleep once more in a well-constructed, clean bed, under a good mosquito curtain, is a luxury that only those who have been obliged to forego for some time can fully appreciate. It was high time that I arrived at such quarters, as I began to experience symptoms of dysentery, — a disease which has proved fatal to many new-comers from Eu- rope. However, a judicious supply of Fijian arrowroot, and a few glasses of port-wine, soon restored me to per- fect health. Mr. Storck, who had been suffering from his fall and those ulcerations to which most people going to the tropics for the first time are subject, also began to get better after being a few days at Lado, so that both of us had reason to be extremely thankful for the hospitality conferred. There being no collective name for the waters situ- ated between Moturiki and Ovalau, and sheltered by the Yanuca (= Yanutha) islands, Mr. Pritchard, in honour of the Honourable Arthur Kinnaird, who takes a deep interest in Fiji, termed them Port Kinnaird, and endea- voured to form a settlement on the south-western parts of Ovalau. When I first visited this settlement there were about twenty-five whites, some of whom had cleared a little land ; but most of them seemed to be- long to that class of immigrants who arrive almost F 2 68 A MISSION TO VITI. penniless, and are disappointed on not becoming trans- formed into capitalists on landing. I endeavoured to urge them to begin planting their land with such tro- pical products as the climate favours, and told them of my little cotton plantation at Somosomo. All hoped to make their fortune when Port Kinnaird should be- come the capital of Fiji, and their land rise in value. The question of where the capital of Fiji is going to be on the country becoming a European colony, is a much debated one in the islands. The unfitness of Bau, the native capital, for all commercial purposes, being generally acknowledged, four places have laid claim to that distinction, — Levuka, Ga Loa, Port Kin- naird, and Suva. Levuka has always been a favour- ite resort of the white population, and has a central position, and a tolerably good though not large harbour, but there is no room for a town. Rocks rise from almost the water's edge, allowing space for only one or two rows of houses, the heat in which is suffocating ; and unless a series of works is commenced similar to those which render Valetta a city of terraces, there is no hope of making Levuka more than a trading village. When I finally left it, in November, 1860, there were only few weather-boarded houses, belonging to the consuls and missionaries, — all the rest of the dwellings were large huts built by the natives. The finest house was that of Mr. Binner, beautifully situated on the top of a hill, and commanding a grand view of the reef and its curl- ing surf. Closely adjoining Levuka — as London does Westminster, New York Brooklyn, or Hamburg Altona — is Totoga, a fortified place with thick walls and SITE FOR THE NEW CAPITAL. 69 gateways, where the Eoman Catholic missionaries and several French reside. True, this place might be in- corporated with Levuka, but it is surrounded by swamps, the drainage of which would be a matter of difficulty to a young community. Ga Loa, or Black Dusk Bay, on the southern side of Kadavu, is the next place that recommends itself to consideration. Should a steam communication be esta- blished from Brisbane, Australia, to Central America, and via Fiji, Ga Loa would recommend itself as a fit place for steamers to call at ; and I have advocated its claims both in the ' Athenaeum ' and before the Royal Geographical Society of London, and shall speak of it again when describing our movements at Kadavu. But I do not think it well suited for the capital of Fiji. Kadavu, on which it is situated, is one of the southern- most islands, and separated by a sea of more than sixty miles from Viti Levu, the principal island, and by more than one hundred and fifty miles from the centre of Vanua Levu and Taviuni. Small canoes or open boats could not venture thither except in fair weather, and its isolation would always be against its becoming the true metropolis. Port Kinnaird offers great advantages, indepen- dent of its central position. It is a very fine port, per- fectly landlocked ; and if a portion of Moturiki could be devoted to a site for a town, it would speedily rise in importance, — for Moturiki is probably the finest little island in the group. The entrance to Port Kinnaird is popularly regarded as difficult and impracticable, but a consultation of Captain Denham's survey proves 70 A MISSION TO VITI. ingress and egress to be easy. Port Kinnaird would doubtless become the future capital if its advantages were not totally eclipsed by Suva in Viti Levu. So convinced has every one capable of forming an opinion become that Suva will be the capital, that the land around the harbour has enormously risen of late ; £20 an acre was asked in November, 1860; and £10 I saw actually refused for land a few years previously not worth more than a few pence at the utmost. Not a single house had then been built. The general con- viction that Suva must become the capital seems to have been the sole cause of this sudden rise. If one were to write a puff for a land speculator, one would hardly string together a greater number of favour- able conditions. There is a good harbour, with mud bottom, deep water right alongside of the shore, shel- tered by a reef, and having a wide passage for the largest vessels to beat out. When once inside the pas- sage there is clear sea-room, no outlying shoals or reefs. Suva commands the most extensive agricultural district in Fiji, through which run fine rivers (the Navua and Wai Levu or Kewa) navigable for boats for many miles inland. Suva has besides outside reef communi- cation completely around Viti Levu, with the exception of a few miles on the southern shore and the westward, and continuing to the northward to Vanua Levu, and along the entire southern shore of that island. The convenience of inside reef communication is demon- strated in the case of parties employed in sawing. Logs are purchased at a distance of forty miles from the pits, and floated up by natives at a trifling cost. Were there COMMERCIAL ENTERPRISE. 71 no reefs, this would be an impossibility. Suva Point is a gently undulated country, free from swamps, and about three miles wide or thereabout at the base. It has on one side Suva Bay, on the other Laucala ( = Lau- thala) Bay; the latter first surveyed by Sir Edward Belcher,* and offering many conveniences. The point itself is open to the prevailing winds ; it is thinly tim- ' bered with bread-fruit, cocoa-nut, dawa, and other trees of no great growth, and thus requires but little clearing. A few days after my arrival at Lado, we were grati- fied by a visit from Mr. Caesar Godeffroy, of Hamburg, who had been several years in the South Sea es- tablishing a direct trade with Germany, and planting agencies in the most important groups. Messrs. Go- deffroy and Co. are the first great house who have entered this comparatively new field of commercial en- terprise, and there is every reason to believe their ope- rations successful. There is a great market in the South Seas, but only those who have an intimate ac- quaintance with the articles required should ever be tempted to enter it. Even the comparatively few things I took out for barter taught me the value of inquiring most minutely into the exact nature of the articles here current. Knives with white handles were rejected or but slightly esteemed, though their blades were even better than those having Black ones, and so with every- thing else. Judging from the crowds of boats and canoes daily arriving at Lado — for every one here has either the one * Bcwa Beads are called in the Admiralty Chart Nukulau Harbour ; the special chart published embraces the surreys of Sir E. Belcher. 72 A MISSION TO VITI. or the other — the sudden disappearance of this Con- sular establishment would be felt as a serious incon- venience. The British Consul is now the sole authority that keeps order in Fiji — the natives having voluntarily made over to him the entire jurisdiction of the group, and found it preferable in their quarrels with the whites to abide by his judgment, rather than break their own heads and those of the white settlers by an appeal to the club. It was easy for them to arrive at this conclu- sion ; meanwhile, the person who thus found himself called upon to adjust the differences of a native popu- lation about twice that of New Zealand, and a thick sprinkling of white immigrants, some of whom hold queer ideas of poetical justice, had no idle time of it ; and if Mr. Pritchard had not acquired a thorough mas- tery over the Polynesian mind by means of his intimate acquaintance with all their customs, usages, and tradi- tions, of which he skilfully avails himself, there would be endless fights and dissensions, to the great detriment of the native population and the interests of commerce. I have repeatedly listened to the proceedings in court, and been struck with the logical acuteness of the natives. Their mind seems indeed of a much superior cast to that of most savages ; and their discussions are as much above those of the Maoris reported in the New Zealand newspapers, as the talk of men is to the prattle of chil- dren. On the 28th of June, Cakobau (or Thakombau, as his name may be written according to English orthography), King of Fiji, and supreme Chief of Bau, paid a visit to Lado, and I was formally introduced to him. His Ma- KING CAKOBAU. 73 jesty has been described repeatedly as a man of almost gigantic dimensions. But he is only of fair proportions, and does not measure more than six feet in height. I can speak very positively on these points, having often seen him with nothing more than a few yards of native cloth on, as well as in a blue naval uniform. When dressed in uniform, people would scarcely believe that he could be the same man whose powerful build excited their attention. When one day in his company I got quite close to him, in order to take his measure without his becoming aware of the attempt. But his quick eye had detected the studies of comparative ana- tomy in which I was engaged, and very good-naturedly he offered to stand close to me, when it was found that he was more than two inches shorter than I am, without his shoes and socks, whilst I measure exactly six feet two inches, so that he is after all only six feet high. It is not difficult to reconcile the statements relating to his gigantic stature with what I have ascertained. People not accustomed to move much amongst natives almost in an absolute state of nudity, are generally de- ceived about the size of the person they see before them. Moreover, the King, previous to his conversion to Christianity, wore a large head of hair, all frizzled and curled in such a way as to stand literally on end, and covered with a piece of white native cloth, — a device which must have greatly added to his height, and in- duced foreigners to believe him much taller than he really is. He has of late years suffered a little from elephantiasis, but generally enjoys very good health. None of the portraits that have been published do jus- 74 A MISSION TO vrri. tice to him, and he feels rather annoyed that Europeans should think him as ugly as those representations make him. His face expresses great shrewdness and good- humour ; his bearing is very dignified on public occa- sions ; and it was gratifying to see him at church be- having in a manner that no reasonable man could find the slightest fault with. The Queen of Fiji, to whom Cakobau has been mar- ried according to Christian rites ever since he aban- doned heathenism, is a rather stout, quiet woman, about five feet two inches in height. I have only seen her once dressed, and that at the time of our first official interview about the cession. She then wore a neat bonnet, latest Parisian fashion, a coloured silk dress, and a black mantilla trimmed with lace. I need scarcely add that the use of crinoline was not unknown even in this remote quarter of the globe. The Queen, at the interview alluded to, was rather bashful, owing to a wish expressed by the Consul that she should sit at her husband's side, instead of, as the rules of the country demanded, behind him. However, she com- ported herself very well indeed, but I daresay was very glad to get her clothes off as soon as the official inter- view was over. Cakobau calls himself " Tui Viti," or King of Fiji, and has a perfect right to it. True Fiji is divided into a number of petty states, yet all of them acknowledge vassalage to Bau by paying either a direct tribute to it, or being tributary to states so circumstanced. It is highly probable, however, that at one time all Fijians were under one head, and formed perhaps a more com- "TUI VITI." 75 pact nation than they do at present. Of course, I am aware the title " Tui Viti " has been revived only lately ; owing, it is stated, to a letter which General Miller, formerly H. B. M. Consul-General at the Hawaiian, or Sandwich Islands, addressed to " Tui Viti," and which Cakobau, as the most powerful chief of the leading state, thought it right to open. But the title "Tui Viti" occurs in many ancient legends current in various groups of Polynesia, and could scarcely have originated with such close neighbours, who would rather be apt to detract than to magnify the power of a foreign nation already far above them in the exercise of various useful arts and manufactures. Old traditions further state the Fijians to have been an unwarlike people, until they had established a more intimate and frequent intercourse with the light-coloured races of the eastern groups, when sanguinary intratribal quarrels became almost their normal condition. These traditions would be favourable to the existence of a powerful mo- narchy in Fiji, such as legendary evidence represents it as being at one time, and also its ultimate extinction and remoulding by the growing power of petty chiefs, skilful in new practices of war acquired whilst abroad. The hypothesis advanced derives additional strength from the fact of all Fijians, though scattered over a group of more than two hundred different islands, speaking one language, having a powerfully developed sense of nation- ality, and feeling as one people. No ancient Roman could have pronounced the words " Oivis Eomanus sum " with greater pride or dignity than a modern Fijian calls himself a " Kai Viti" a Fijian. We can scarcely con- 76 A MISSION TO VITI. ceive these general sentiments to have taken hold of the popular mind with such force, if the people had always been divided into petty states as at present. Away from the capital and Cakobau, some of the Fijian kinglets talk very boastfully of their total independence, and wish you to believe the suzerainty of Bau merely applies to certain inferior chieftains ; whilst the social supremacy is seldom disputed, and the court dialect is understood by all the chiefs, even those living in the remotest parts of the group, and it has therefore very properly been adopted by the Wesleyan missionaries in their translation of the Bible. Each of these states or principalities has its ambassador at Bau (Mataki Bail), who, however, does not constantly reside in the capital, but only when there is any business to transact, which may occasionally last for weeks or months. On arriving at Bau, he takes up his abode at the house of the Bauan " minister," if he may be called so, charged with the affairs of the district from which he comes as ambas- sador, and he is by his host introduced to the King of Fiji. When Bau has any business to transact abroad, the ambassador selected is invariably the minister of the affairs of the district to which he is sent, and his place at the capital is temporarily filled by a relative. The office of these diplomatic agents is hereditary in certain families, and they are appointed by the ruling chiefs. Title and office are quite as much valued as they are in Europe by ourselves, — human nature being human nature all the world over. On the 28th of July, Mr. Pritchard and myself set out in the consular gig for Navua, Viti Levu, to pay our BAU. 77 visit to Chief Kuruduadua. There being rather a strong south-easterly breeze, we arrived two hours after dark at Bau, thoroughly wet from salt water, and heartily glad to take shelter under the hospitable roof of Mr.Collis, a gentleman connected 'with the mission. Until 1854, Bau, which is the name of the metropolis, as well as the ruling state, was opposed to the missionaries, and the ovens in which the bodies of human victims were baked scarcely ever got cold. Since then, however, a great change has taken place. The King and all his court have embraced Christianity ; of the heathen tem- ples, which, by their pyramidal form, gave such a pecu- liar local colouring to old pictures of the place, only the foundations remain ; the sacred groves in the neigh- bourhood are cut down ; and in the great square where formerly cannibal feasts took place, a large church has been erected. Not without emotion did I land on this blood-stained soil, where probably greater iniquities were perpetrated than ever disgraced any other spot on earth. It was about eight o'clock in the evening ; and instead of the wild noise that greeted former visitors, family prayer was heard from nearly every house. To bring about such a change has indeed required no slight efforts ; and many valuable lives had to be sacrificed, — for although no missionary in Fiji has ever met with a vio- lent death, yet the list of those who died in the midst of their labours is proportionally very great. The Wes- leyans, to whose disinterestedness the conversion of these degraded beings is due, have, as a society, expended £75,000 on this object; and if the private donations of friends to individual missionaries and their families 78 A MISSION TO VITI. be added, the sum swells to the respectable amount of £80,000. Bau is built on a small island on the east side of Viti Levu, with which it is connected by a long flat of coral, fordable at high water, and in places bare at low. The annexed sketch, taken in 1860, by Mrs. Smythe, and kindly placed at my disposal, will give a better idea of the place than any description. The island is at the back about a hundred feet high, and around the beach thickly covered with native houses, arranged in crooked streets. The top of the island, where the British flag is waving, was a mere receptacle for rubbish, until the in- dustry of the missionaiies converted it into smiling gar- dens and eligible sites for dwelling-houses. At my first visit the natives were just finishing their new JBure ni sa, — a building, one or several of which are found in every town, and which may be described as a compromise be- tween our club-houses and town-halls. It was 125 feet long, but not quite so high as the adjoining church, which is 100 feet high, and seems a tremendous edifice for natives to erect without nails, and the use of such tools as are employed by us. The King's residence is close to the beach, and a large native-built house, to which several out-houses are attached : one of which is inhabited by Peter, a Ton- guese, who fills the office of prime minister, and seems much attached to the King. In front of the house is a fine lawn of couch-grass, and groups of iron-wood, and other native shrubs and trees, — the whole, I believe, a creation of Mrs. Collis, the wife of the resident training master at Bau, who will ever live in my memory, for CAUSES OF BAU'S SUPREMACY. 79 having, amongst other great acts of kindness conferred, never failed to supply me in this land of pork and yams with bread, cakes, and other acceptable presents when- ever I came in that neighbourhood. Bau is said to own its present superiority to the for- tunate accident of having been the first familiar with the use of fire-arms. Charles Savage, a Swede, intro duced it about the beginning of this century. But it was not only to this accident that Bau is indebted to its permanent ascendency. Like England, but on a lilliputian scale, it is a great naval power, able to send its fleets of canoes to any part rebelling against its authority, or refusing to discharge its annual tribute. The Bauans are a fine race, nearly all members of noble families or gentlefolks. Most of them are tall, well- proportioned, and often with a handsome cast of coun- tenance. In Fiji, as in fact all over the South Sea, a man is estimated by the height of his body, and little men are regarded with contempt. Their tall figures prove a great advantage to the Bauans. This general con- tempt for small men arises from the fact, that through- out Polynesia the chiefs and upper classes are taller than the lower orders, and with a finer physical they combine a greater mental development. They are in every respect superior to the people whom they rule. They are as genuine an aristocracy as ever existed in any country. They know every plant, animal, rock, river, and mountain; are familiar with their history, legends, and traditions ; and strict in observing every point of their complicated etiquette. They swim, row, sail, shoot, and fight better than the common people, and 80 A MISSION TO VITI. excel in house and canoe building. Thus they keep their place amongst a people not able to fall back upon dress and finery to lend distinction to rank, dignity to person. We were desirous of pushing on early the next morn- ing, but as the tide did not suit, we ran over to Viwa, a small island close to Bau, where a permanent print- ing-press has been established in the first stone house ever built in the group. The greater portion of the Fijian Bible has been printed at this establishment; and the edition, now exhausted, is very much esteemed by the natives. A Fijian and English Dictionary, com- posed by D. Hazelwood, is another great work pro- duced here in 1850. This Dictionary is full of a mass of reliable information, and must be regarded as the best contribution the Fijian missionaries have made to science. Ethnologists, geographers, and naturalists, and philologists as a matter of course, will find here facts and observations not met with elsewhere.* Viwa is full of fruit-trees, and altogether a charming spot. The cocoa-nut palm seems to be the only plant that does not flourish. After having attained a certain height it begins to wither — the foliage looking as if boil- ing water had been poured over it. We found Messrs. Martin and Baker, the two gentle- men connected with the mission of this place, absent, — they having gone to look for an eligible new station on Vanua Levu. But their wives were at home, and glad to see us safe. Through telescopes they had watched our boat on the previous evening, as long as daylight * I believe Messrs. Triibner and Co., Paternoster Row, London, have still a few copies of this publication on hand. IMPRACTICABLE LAWS. 81 lasted, fearing that we might meet with some accident in the rough sea we had to cross. On going back to Bau, Mr. Fordham, the principal missionary, represented to Mr. Pritchard the desirable- ness of prohibiting the importation of firearms and gun- powder into Fiji. Fighting, he thought, might thus be prevented. Mr. Pritchard agreed with him that there was not much use for those articles, there being no wild animals, and only a few ducks and wood-pigeons to shoot, but that it would be impolitic to venture upon making any prohibitive law, waiving all considerations as to the right of doing so, when there were no officers to execute it. Even supposing that a certain pressure could be put upon the English subjects, who was to pre- vent the Americans, Germans, and French from selling any number of firearms, and any amount of gunpowder, to the natives I On a previous occasion, Mr. Pritchard was seriously asked by another gentleman to introduce the Maine liquor-law. No spirits of any kind should be landed or sold. This idea the Consul also refused to entertain. The law had broken clown when enforced by all the power of a great state, and could scarcely be expected to work well under less favourable circum- stances. G 82 CHAPTER V. THE WAI LEVU, OR GEEAT RIVER. — CANAL DUG BY NATIVES. MATAISUVA. INSTITUTION FOR TRAINING NATIVE TEACHERS. — SACRED GROVES, TREES, AND STONES. — MOSQUITOES. ISLAND OF NAIGANI. — MR. EGGER- STROM'S KINDNESS. — FEUDS AT NADROGA. — NUKUBALAWU. — TAGURU. — NAVUA RIVER. THE Rewa, Wai Levu, or great river of Viti Levu, has four large mouths, and its deltas are extremely fertile, and cultivated to some extent by the natives. About eighteen miles from its mouth it receives the Wai Maim, which comes from the west, whilst the main branch takes its rise in the Namosi Valley. It was explored in 1856 by Dr. Macdonald, of H.M.S. Herald, Captain Denham, ac- companied by Mr. Samuel Waterhouse, of the Wesleyan Mission, and a full account of their proceedings has been published.* Mataisuva, our next stopping-place, is built on one of the large deltas, a little below the town of Rewa. From Bau it may be reached either by sea or by going up the Wai ni ki, or Kaba mouth. The natives have shortened the latter passage more than * " Proceedings of the Expedition for the Exploration of the Rewa river and its Tributaries, in Na Viti Levu, Fiji Islands. By John Denis Mac- donald, Esq., Assistant Surgeon of H.M.S. Herald, Captain N". M. Den- ham," in the Journal of the Royal Geographical Society, vol. xxvii., pp. 232-268, with a Map by Arrowsmith. KELE-MU8U CANAL. 83 twenty miles by cutting a canal, Kele Musu, across the longest of the deltas. Taking advantage of the tide setting in, we left Ban about noon and soon found our- selves in the canal, probably the greatest piece of engi- neering ever executed in these islands, affording a proof how thickly they must have been populated to allow such an undertaking, at a time when there was nothing but staves to dig the ground, hands to shovel it up, and baskets to carry it away. It has not been ascertained when this canal was dug ; all that can be elucidated is, that it was made long ago, and for the purpose of carry- ing out a military stratagem. It is about two miles long, sixty feet wide, and large canoes pass without dif- ficulty. On a subsequent occasion, our schooner, the ' Paul Jones,' finding it impossible to get from Bau to Rewa by sea on account of a heavy gale, actually made her way through this canal, by taking due advantage of the tide. We neared Mataisuva, the mission-station, about sun- set, and passing the mangrove forest, were surprised to see the immense number of Flying Foxes, or Bats (No- toptcris Macdonaldii\ rising from them. They measure nearly a yard from the extreme points of their wings. Mr. Pritchard informed me that at Samoa, the same or a very nearly allied species is a great pet with the natives of that group, and probably the only known instance of a domesticated bat. Passing the town of Rewa, we reached Mataisuva at half-past six on the evening of the 29th of June, and were hospitably received by the Rev. W. Moore, who was then the superintendent of an institution for training native G 2 84 A MISSION TO VITI. teachers. A large square piece of ground had been set aside for a number of houses surrounded by little gardens in which the teachers resided. Some of these teachers were Fijian, some Tonguese. The natives like their own countrymen best, because they always suspect the Ton- guese, and with good reason, of playing into the hands of the Tonguese chiefs, whose great aim is to make them- selves masters of Fiji. These teachers, after having been properly trained at this institution, are sent as residents to those parts of the country which have applied for them ; and they are of very essential service in preparing the ground for the white missionaries, whose limited number is quite inadequate to the great task set before them, that of christianizing Fiji. Many parts of the group are now anxiously desiring the Gospel, but, with so few labourers in the field and only limited funds, it is im- possible to do much more than is now attempted. Apart from any religious consideration, I should always sup- port the Protestant missionary in preference to the Ro- man Catholic, because the latter attempts simply the con- version of the heathen, whilst the Protestant not only christianizes, but at the same time civilizes them. The quiet, well-regulated family life and cleanly habits which our Protestant missionaries set before the savage, are of inestimable value to the people whom they endeavour to raise in the scale of humanity. It is quite wrong to suppose that savages do not notice whether a man wears clean linen and is well washed or not. They do notice it, and never fail to draw comparisons in favour of those who, by means of their comfortable homes, are enabled to appear before them as good examples of cleanliness. MATAISUVA. 85 Though most of the white Wesleyan missionaries are perfect masters of the language, they own themselves that the native teachers they had trained generally beat them in the choice of local illustrations. Of course, there is occasionally a want of tact on the part of the latter. Thus, one of them, wishing to illustrate how wisely in everything nature had adapted the means to the end, chose the hand, and commenced by saying, " Now, when you eat a human hand, you will perceive," etc. This illustration would have sounded odd to a Christian congregation at home, but never excited any notice amongst a people just emerging from cannibalism. The church at Mataisuva is not so large as that at Bau, but it is much better finished, and some of the beams under the roof are covered with different-coloured fibres of the cocoa-nut worked in various elegant patterns. The ridge-beams, always projecting on both ends, accord- ing to strict Fijian customs, are ornamented with white shells (Ovulwn ovum, Swb.), and in front of the church there are some curiously-cut stems of tree-ferns. Alto- gether the building is a fine specimen of native ar- chitecture, and the only thing to complete it is a good tolling bell. Hitherto the congregation has been obliged to be called together by large drums, made of Tavola wood, beaten by thick and short pieces of wood, — a con- trivance which may be heard for several miles around, but sounds essentially unchristian. The Eev. William Moore, as an apt Fijian scholar, devotes some of the spare moments he can snatch to a subject hitherto much neglected, that of collecting the "mekes" or old songs of the natives, now fast fading 86 A MISSION TO V1TI. away. He has also made considerable advance in trans- lating ' The Pilgrim's Progress ' into Fijian, a task which, if I mistake not, has been somewhat facilitated by Mrs. Binner's unpublished version of a portion of that book. Biinyan's great allegory has already been translated into one or two Polynesian languages, and the natives seemed to like it very much as long as they believed it to be a genuine story, but when they heard that it was only a series of "lies," their interest abated. It will be in- teresting to know how the Fijians receive it. They are as true believers in the genuineness of their own nu- merous fairy tales and doings of their gods, as the an- cient Greeks were in those of their gods and demigods ; — the hold which Homer had on the national mind arising, probably, quite as much from his embodying this feeling, as well as expressing it in language still the admiration of mankind. Accompanied by Mr. Moore we went to the town of Rewa, in order to gather specimens of two new palms, one of them a fan-palm (Pritchardia pacijica, Seem, et Wendl.), the leaves of which are only used by chiefs, as was the case with those of the Talipot palm in Ceylon. I also collected some interesting information about the bread-fruit, of which there are no less than ten different varieties cultivated at Rewa, including the best of the group. On our way home we fell in with a little schooner belonging to the mission, and returning from a trip up the Rewa river, where she had been sent for yams. She had not accomplished her object, as two hostile parties of natives had not allowed her to pass, and even fired SACKED GROVES AND TREES. 87 at her, without however wounding or killing any one. Formerly these inter-tribal feuds were of much more fre- quent occurrence, and often protracted over a consider- able period of time ; but since firearms have become accessible to all parties, the same result followed in Fiji as in Europe upon the invention of gunpowder. Sacred groves and trees form as prominent a feature in the paganism of the Fijians as they did in that of the In do-Germanic nations. A fine grove still exists in the Eewa district near the mission-station of Mataisuva, and at a point of the coast termed Na Vadra Tolu (the three screw-pines), probably from three specimens of the Pandanus odoratissimus, still a common plant in that locality, having stood there. Leaving the mission- premises, and keeping along the sandy beach, an enor- mous Yevuyevu tree (Hernandia Sonora, Linn.) presents itself, forming a complete bower, which leads to a curi- ous group of vegetable giants. A venerable Vutu raka- raka (Barringtonia speciosa, Linn.), more than sixty feet high, has thrown out several huge branches, two of which form, in connection with the stem, bold arches. The large aerial roots of epiphytical fig-trees are hold- ing the monster in close embrace ; several kinds of ferns and climbing Aroidece and wax-flowers (Hoyas) interlace the struggling masses, and tend to increase the wildness of this fantastic scene. The dense foliage of surround- ing Vesi, Ivi, and other fine trees ensures a constant gloom and sombreness to the place ; and only through the bower, serving as an entrance, does the eye obtain a glance at the open sea, and perchance the sight of a passing canoe with its large triangular sail. It was at 00 A MISSION TO VITI. this lonely spot, far away from human habitations, where in the depth of night the heathen priest used to con- sult the gods whether it was to be war or peace. If at dawn of day blood was found on the path, more blood was to be spilt ; if no such sign was discoverable, peace was the watchword. Several celebrated groves were de- stroyed on the introduction of Christianity, and a large one near Bau was felled the day after King Cakobau had embraced the new faith, the native carpenters trem- bling when they had to lay the axe on objects so long sacred to them by all the laws of " tabu." They were taught by tradition that when, once upon a time, their forefathers felled some of these trees, and repaired the next day to the spot in order to square the logs, they found the trees again in their proper position, and growing as if no sacrilegious axe had ever laid them low. Besides these groves, there were isolated trees which were held sacred ; and in days of yore European saw- yers came occasionally in unpleasant contact with the Fijians when, unknowingly, they had cut them down for timber. Vesi (Afzelia bijuga, A. Gray) and Baka (Ficus sp.) seemed to have been those principally selected. The Vesi furnishes the best timber of the islands, and may, as the most valued tree, have been thought the fit residence of a god ; there is nothing in its appearance that is extraordinary, our beech most nearly resembling it in look. The Baka is not famous for its timber; but its habit is as remarkable as that of the banyan- tree of India, aerial roots propping up its branches and forming a -fantastic maze which no words can describe. At first SACKED STONES. 89 living as an epiphyte on other trees, it soon acquires such dimensions that it kills its supporter, and henceforward must draw its nourishment from the soil. There are fine specimens of the Baka on the Isthmus of Kadavu ; and on an islet belonging to Mr. Hennig the aerial root of the Baka formed a cabin in which Mr. Pritchard, myself, and all our boat's crew took shelter during a heavy tropical shower ; and twenty persons might have found room there. The crown of this tree was one hun- dred and fifty-two feet in diameter, or four hundred and fifty-six feet in circumference. The horizontal branches and the large roots issuing from all parts of the stem, and more sparingly from the branches, rendered this tree a noble object, well calculated to inspire pleasure or awe. The Rev. W. Moore lamented the destruction of one of these fine trees near Rewa, committed by a sick man in hopes that it might be pleasing to the Christian God, and incline him to favour his convalescence. These sacred groves and trees were not worshipped as gods, but, as in the Odic religions of our ancestors, looked upon as places where certain gods had taken up their abode. Sacred stones, to which the natives pay reverence, exist in Fiji ; for instance, near Vuna and Bau, as well as in many other parts of Polynesia. Fully granting their being the supposed abode of certain gods and goddesses, as has been contended, we can only hope to arrive at their real meaning and primaiy origin, by con- sidering them in connection with the ideas associated with or represented by other monoliths. I would par- ticularly direct attention to their peculiar shape, of 90 A MISSION TO VITI. which the missionaries Williams and Turner* have published some good illustrations. Compared with cer- tain remnants of Priapus worship, as found in Indian temples, the "Museo segreto" of Naples, and, freed from all obscenity, in the obelisks of Egypt, their nature be- comes evident. More or less, these monoliths repre- sented the generative principle and procreation ; and, if the subject admitted of popular treatment, it would not be difficult to show that the Polynesian stones, their shape, the reverence paid to them, their decoration, and the results expected from their worship, are quite in accordance with a widely-spread superstition, which as- sumed such offensive forms in ancient Home, and found vent in the noblest monuments of which the land of the Pharaohs can boast. Turner, after stating that he had in his possession several smooth stones from the New Hebrides, says that some of the Polynesian stone-gods were supposed to cause fecundity in pigs, rain and sun- shine. A stone at Mayo, according to the Earl of Roden, was carefully wrapped up in flannel, periodically worshipped, and supplicated to send wrecks on the coast. Two large stones, lying at the bottom of a moat, are said to have given birth to Degei, the supreme god of Fiji. In all instances an addition to objects already existing was expected from these monoliths. There was a stone near Bau, which, whenever a lady of rank at the Fijian capital was confined, also gave birth to a little stone. It argues nothing that these stony offsprings were fraudulently placed there. The ideas floating in * Williams's ' Fiji and Fijians,' p. 220. Turner's 'Nineteen Years in Polynesia,' p. 347. MOSQUITOES. 91 the minds of the bulk of the people absolutely tended towards the unbiassed conviction that some mysterious connection existed between the large stone and the Bauan ladies. Since the introduction of Christianity to these districts, it has been found necessary to remove the large stone, leaving its numerous posterity behind, to get on as best it may. During the rainy season, the mouth of the Rewa river is notorious for myriads of mosquitoes. On some evenings the hetacombs slain by incautious contact with the name, actually put the candles out. Mr. Moore once contrived a room on the principle of a mosquito-curtain ; but the contrivance was not found to answer, as few persons could be induced to purchase freedom from irri- tating bites by confinement for several hours of a hot night in an insufficiently ventilated kind of cage, which, from its very nature, could not be so large as to admit of much moving about, or the introduction of lights for reading or writing. Mosquitoes are objects to which the attention of all new-comers is irresistibly directed. Those of Somosomo never favoured us with a call until after breakfast, and very obligingly withdrew about sun- set, to let us have the evening to ourselves. In other parts of the group the evening is their very time for paying visits. The moment one of their monotonous solos is heard, a tatti will immediately follow. The dif- ference between the voices of the various species is al most as great as that observable in those of men ; and a naturalist studying these insects as thoroughly as they study him should either possess an ear musically trained or else carry a fiddle, in order to determine the exact 92 A MISSION TO VITI. note struck up. I am persuaded that every mosquito, from the large sluggish one which annoyed us when searching for Sir John Franklin in the Arctic Circle, to the little swift one of the Equator, may be known as readily by its peculiar note as by any artificial dia- gnosis,— the Sydney one pre-eminently by its very deep tone. On the 2nd of July, about noon, we left Mataisuva, and at 7 P.M. reached Naqara (the Cave), in the island of Naigani, where Mr. Eggerstrom, a Swedish gentle- man, had taken up his abode. He was just recovering from a serious illness contracted by incautious contact with the Kau karo, or Itchwood, a poisonous tree (Oncocarpm Vitiensis, A. Gray = Elms atrum, Forst.) peculiar to Fiji and New Caledonia, the stem of which he had been converting into a flag-staff. Mr. Eggerstrom received us cordially, and had tea and supper prepared. He also wished us to sleep under his hospitable roof; but the mosquitoes were so very troublesome that we could hardly finish our meal, and were obliged to beat a hasty retreat to our boat, though our kind host assured us that if we remained a little longer we should get quite as much used to their bites as he was, and feel no inconvenience. We spread the awning over our gig, and made every preparation for sleeping. As it was still early, Mr. Pritchard read, and I went again on shore, to the native village, which I found, as I had been as- sured, quite free from mosquitoes. The natives were very friendly ; they showed me their canoes, and brought me cocoa-nuts and sugar-cane to eat ; I gave them a few sticks of tobacco in return, and wanted them to dance; FEUDS AT NADROGA. 93 but they informed me, through the interpreter, that the missionaries desire them not to dance nor practise any more their game of throwing canes, after the yams have been planted. They said they should sing instead, and forthwith commenced. I let them go on till they came to a " meke, " or song, in which they mimicked the missionaries; I then stopped them by wishing them " good night." Most of our crew passed the night on shore, and Mr. Pritchard and I slept in the consular gig, anchored close to the shore. Early next morning we were awoke by the arrival of a large canoe from Nadroga. The man in charge came to ask the Consul's advice about making peace with the heathens who had for several months made war upon Nadroga for becoming Christian. They had only ten towns, six of which had been taken by the heathens, and several inhabitants been baked and eaten. The Nadroga people had only captured two towns, and now feared they could not hold out much longer unless Christian natives of other districts hastened to their as- sistance. They were now going to Rewa and Ovalau, to ask for such assistance, and had with them a lot of tor- toiseshell, to be exchanged for muskets and powder. Mr. Pritchard told them that he should visit them in about a month, and then use his influence to restore peace. I may as well add in this place, that he did so in August, with Colonel Smythe, and that they conjointly sent a messenger to the heathens, inviting their chiefs to an in- terview. The messenger was received with blows, and told it was fortunate that he had come by himself. If two had been dispatched, one would have been sent back 94 A MISSION TO VITT. to tell the tale ; now, as only one had come, he should merely be half killed, and might go home to say that they neither cared for the Consul nor for Colonel Smythe, and declined all interference on their part. We went again on shore, as Mr. Eggerstrom had in- vited us to breakfast and to inspect his establishment by daylight. Mr. Eggerstrom had expended a great deal of labour on his retreat, cut steps in the solid rocks, and made a large basin for bathing, and seats near the spring from which the water was supplied. He seemed to have been anxious to render his new home as pretty as pos- sible, and paid less regard to the requirements of the crop he wished to grow. He - complained that nothing would flourish, and I told him that unless he sacrificed more trees, his sweet potatoes, yams, and bananas, to say nothing about European vegetables, would be, as hitherto, a prey to snails, caterpillars, and insects, and his house never free from mosquitoes. But he said he loved the shade, and could not make up his mind to do that. Although the place was swarming with mosquitoes the previous night, there was now not one to be seen. The sky looked very rainy, and we hesitated whether to stay or push on. We decided on adopting the latter course, but had hardly been afloat more than ten mi- nutes when the rain began to come down in such tor- rents that our boat required constant baling. We took shelter at Nukubalawu, in the house of an Ameri- can, Mr. Work, who, like most of the old white settlers, is better known in Fiji by his nickname, in this instance " Moses." He had a sawing-pit, which he worked with NUKUBALAWU, TAGURU, NAVUA. 95 natives, one of whom had been with him for years. Though he was moving across the bay, to take up his residence on the little island inhabited by Mr. Egger- strom, he made us very comfortable; and I took ad- vantage to arrange my collection of plants, which had seriously suffered from the heavy shower that drove us to seek shelter in this place. The rain continued all day, so that we were quite unable to stir. Leaving Nukubalawu next morning, we passed a re- markable rock on the shore of Viti Levu, which from its peculiar shape and large dimensions Mr. Pritchard and I named the " Giant's Thumb." The rain continued, and after an hour's pulling and sailing, we were obliged to land at Taguru, where we found three white men en- gaged in sawing and building boats. As Taguru be- longs to Kuruduadua's dominions, we dispatched a mes- senger to Navua, the chief's residence on the coast, to inform him that we would be with him as soon as the weather permitted. Towards sunset there was a lull in the rain, and we at once resumed our way to the chief, who was not yet under missionary influence, and about whose cannibalism and despotic government we had heard so much. A pull of about two miles westwards brought us to the Navua, one of the largest rivers in Viti Levu, and not yet explored by any scientific man. There are se- veral extensive deltas at its mouth, composed of rich alluvial soil, and exceedingly well adapted for cotton. From information gathered, I was led to conclude that the sago-palm was a member of the Fijian flora. My inquiries commenced in the eastern part of the group, 96 A MISSION TO VITI. and I was always directed westward, and assured at every place that I should find the object of my search a few miles further on ; but that not proving the case, I began to look upon it as a mere phantom, when at last, after a search of several hundred miles, whole groves of fine sago-palms (Sagus Vitiensis, Herm. Wendl.) greeted me on the banks of the Navua river. This is an interesting discovery ; botanically, because no sago- palm had ever been found so far south ; philologically, because the plant is here termed Soga, calling to mind the names of Sagu, or Sago, by which it is known in other districts peopled by the Papuan race ; and com- mercially, because it adds an important article to the export list of these islands. The Fijians made no use of the farinaceous pith the Soga contains, though they are familiar with converting that of the Cycas circinalis of the district into cakes, eaten by the chiefs. 97 CHAFFER VI. STAY AT NAVUA. CHIEF KUKUDUADUA's HOUSEHOLD. — " HARRY THE JEW." — A PRINCE AS HE WAS BORN. — MASSACRE PREVENTED. — KURUDUADUA's CHARACTER. STATEMENT OF MR. HEEKES RESPECTING THE NAMUKA OUTRAGE. — TOWN AND BURES OF NAVUA. — TATOOING. — RETURN TO LADO. WE were soon at Navua, a town some three miles up the river, and the residence of Kuruduadua, the great chief of this district. The messenger dispatched from our last halting-place having announced our visit, we found the chieftain seated in his large house, sur- rounded by councillors and attendants, awaiting his guests. As he and his territory are little known to the whites, our arrival created some sensation. The cere- mony of presentation is novel. On entering the house, Charles Wise, our interpreter and guide, as already schooled, addressed the chief to the effect that the Consul had come to introduce a chief from England, who had been sent to explore the country; and that we purposed doing ourselves the honour of being his guests for several days. After a few minutes' silence, the chief orator replied, in the name of Kuruduadua (it would have been against Fijian etiquette for the latter to address us personally at the first formal visit), that the stranger chief and the Consul were welcome, H 98 A MISSION TO VITI. for their presence conferred a distinguished honour on Navua, and the neighbouring tribes should know the fact as soon as the great drum could send forth its roll- ing peals. As he concluded, all the men in the house clapped their hands, and exclaimed, " Mana, mana, mana ! " At the same instant the great drum, or lati, was beaten lustily, and our presence in Navua was he- ralded throughout the district. The chief's eyes glistened, and a proud smile of ex- ultation gleamed over his face as we threw ourselves at full length on the clean mats spread for us. Our loquacious interpreter here began to describe a huge iron pot that was near the door, and to tell how wick- edly it had been appropriated to boil the carcases of slaughtered men instead of bcche-de-mer ; thus confirm- ing the rumour which Macdonald had told in the Geo- graphical Society's Journal. A rather unpleasant feeling stole over us, and we thought of friends and homes far away. Our peace of mind, however, was soon re- stored, when the chief proposed that we should join him in a bowl of kava, a beverage prepared from the root of the South Sea pepper, by being masticated by young men, and tasting like soapsuds, jalap, and magnesia ! A baked pig and some half-dozen baskets of yams were next brought in by women, headed by the chiefs favourite wife, all crawling on their hands and knees. Hungry as we were, the story of the big pot made us rather revolt from this frugal meal ; but ascertaining that it was a real pig we beheld before us, we dined. It is a curious fact, that Fijian custom does not permit the host to partake of the meal which he provides for CHIEF KURUDUADUA. 99 his guests ; and the chief eyed us askance as we ate. About this time a carronade, that guarded the entrance to the house, was discharged — emphatically to demon- strate the chief's delight. Kava, or "yaqpna^ as it is called in Fiji, was masticated and drunk every half- hour. We observed that the string by which the bowl is suspended when not in use was always thrown towards the chief. The object of this is to distinguish the " great man," for if any one incautiously walked upright in his presence, the club is his fate. Kuruduadua has ten wives, and as he himself does not exactly know the number of his children, we were left ignorant on that point. The great drums were beaten every hour of the night, in honour of the guests, but much to our annoyance, for they kept us awake some time after we retired. Our bed was made of se- veral layers of mats, and over us was a large mosquito screen, about twenty feet long, made of the bark of the paper mulberry. As many as eight or ten natives some- times sleep together under one of these screens. Before retiring, the Consul presented various articles, as knives, axes, prints, etc., to the chief; and the usual compli- mentary speeches, expressive of mutual confidence and goodwill, ensued. On the following morning "Harry the Jew" pre- sented himself — the only Englishman who has lived for any length of time in the wild and unknown regions of the interior, and has managed to throw a halo of mystery around himself. His real name is John Hum- phrey Danford, and he has been for so many years living with Kuruduadua and his family, cut off from all H 2 100 A MISSION TO VITI. intercourse with civilization, that he seemed to have lost his reckoning, and was not quite sure whether he had been sixteen, eighteen, or twenty years in the is- lands. His story is full of adventure. Born in Lon- don, he was early apprenticed, first to one then to ano- ther trade, but his employers being all men with whom he " could not agree," he left them in disgust, and took to the sea. This brought him to the South Pa- cific, where he discovered that the captains he had to deal with were disagreeable men ; and, after exchanging from vessel to vessel, he finally ran away at Tongatabu. There, after twelve months' residence, amid many priva- tions, partly caused by a great hurricane and its usual successor, a general famine, he perceived the Tonguese too were disagreeable people, and at once took passage in a canoe for Fiji. Arriving in this group in distress from heavy weather, the canoe was seized at the island of Kadavu, and the crew condemned to be baked in the oven — thus finding the Kadavu people more disagree- able even than the Tonguese. By strategy, however, he succeeded in making his escape to Rewa, where he remained some time with other white men. To one, Charles Pickering, a celebrity of Fiji and the hero of some capital anecdotes, he sold a pinchbeck watch that only went when carried. Whence he got this precious article, he says it is unnecessary to tell ; enough for the history, that as soon as he received the price thereof from Pickering, he jumped into a boat and started off for some distant part of the islands, condemning the white men as a disagreeable set of fellows. In his wanderings he met one " Flash Bob," for whom he 101 acted as agent in the selection and purchase of a lady- love from a native chief. This brought him once more in contact with the disagreeable whites. He now com- menced a beche-de-mer establishment, in conjunction with his friend Pickering, who had given him the nickname of "Harry the Jew," in consequence of the watch trans- action. After some months in his new business, a quar- rel arises about the purchase of Flash Bob's wife; the drying-house of the establishment is burnt down by a party of natives; Pickering, enraged that his property has been destroyed, takes everything away, leaving poor Danford once more penniless, shirtless, and friendless, on the beach. His nickname, translated into Fijian, has begun to work mischief amongst the newly-converted natives, and he is denied hospitalities the heathens would not refuse, because he " belongs to a people who have killed Christ." The brother of Chief Kurudua- dua, hearing of his forlorn condition, sends him an offer to reside at Namosi, his mountain residence, which offer is hesitatingly accepted. His heart almost fails him as he toils his way into the very midst of a nation of canni- bals. But iron necessity urges him on. Tired and footsore, almost in an absolute state of nudity, he reaches the town. Messengers meet him and carry him on their shoulders. The chief then gives him wives, —how many we shall not say, — a yam plantation, two gardens, houses, and dispatches bales of native cloth to the coast, to be exchanged for European dresses for him. He is also raised to the dignity of a " brother," and allotted slaves to attend upon him. Our hero — happy man ! — now, for the first time in his life, finds 102 A MISSION TO VITI. agreeable companions in the chief and his people. In return for the dignities heaped upon him, Harry was to repair the muskets of the tribe, and to tell the chief stories about the white men and their country. Having for about a week been an errand-boy to a London apothecary, he was able to dispense pills to the sick, and thus to assume another important stand in his new life. Years had rolled on without his seeing any white faces, when one day native messengers arrived from the coast, stating that they had been sent by a foreigner, who wished to have an interview with him, and whom they described as wearing a blue coat all covered with looking-glasses. Harry had seen many extraordinary sights, but a man thus attired excited his curiosity, and he acceded to the request. To his sur- prise, he found the late Mr. Williams, United States Consul, whose brass buttons had been mistaken for looking-glasses. Mr. Williams had heard of the exist- ence of some copper mines in the interior, and was de- sirous of purchasing them. Through Harry's interven- tion, that object was accomplished, and the mines passed into Mr. Williams's possession, but they have not as yet been worked, nor indeed been examined by any scien- tific man. Dr. Macdonald and Mr. S. Waterhouse paid a visit to Namosi when they ascended the Eewa river; and Harry, who had long ere that sown all his wild oats, and found one wife quite as much as a sensible man could manage, begged the Rev. Samuel Waterhouse to christen his natural children. But he met with a re- fusal, on the ground of his not being married. " Then pray marry me," was the next demand. "Impossible," A riUNCE AS HE WAS BORN. 103 replied the missionary, " your bride is not a Christian." Danford felt this refusal very deeply. Many a long year had he waited to free himself from the reproach of not living in matrimony, and when at last a fair chance seemed to present itself, he met with disappointment. The Wesleyans have shown a strict adherence to a similar policy, and they may be right from their point of view ; but in consequence many of the whites have been obliged to ask the Catholic priests to discharge those duties which their Protestant brethren refused. The Catholic priests, asking few questions, have invari- ably christened such children, and, remembering the full significance of the formula, that in marrying we take each other " for better, for worse," united in matrimony all loving couples presenting themselves for the purpose. We were struck with the fact, that all the young lads were in a state of absolute nudity ; and, on inquiry, learned that preparations were being made to celebrate the introduction of Kuruduadua's eldest son into man- hood; and that, until then, neither the young chieftain nor his playmates could assume the scanty clothing pe- culiar to the Fijians. Suvana. a rebellious town, consist- ing of about five hundred people, was destined to be sacrificed on the occasion. When the preparations for the feast were concluded, the day for the ceremony ap- pointed, Kuruduadua and his warriors were to make a rush upon the town, and club the inhabitants indis- criminately. The bodies were to be piled into one heap, and on the top of all a living slave would lie on his back. The young chief would then mount the horrid scaffold, and scanding upright on the chest of 104 A MISSION TO VITL the slave, and holding in his uplifted hands an immense club or gun, the priests invoke their gods, and commit the future warrior to their especial protection, praying he may kill all the enemies of the tribe, and never be beaten in battle ; a cheer and a shout from the as- sembled multitude concluding the prayer. Two uncles of the boy were then to ascend the human pile, and to invest him with the malo, or girdle of snow-white tapa ; the multitude again calling on their deities to make him a great conqueror, and a terror to all who breathe enmity to Navua. The malo for the occasion would be perhaps two hundred yards long, and six or eight inches wide. When wound round the body, the lad would hardly be perceivable, and no one but an uncle can divest him of it. We proposed to the chief that we should be allowed to invest his son with the malo> which he at first re- fused, but to which he consented after deliberation with his people. At the appointed hour, the multitude collected in the great strangers' house, or bure ni sa. The lad stood upright in the midst of the assembly, guiltless of clothing, and holding a gun over his head. The Consul and I approached, and in due form wrapped him up in thirty yards of Manchester print, the priest and people chanting songs, and invoking the protec- tion of their gods. A short address from the Consul succeeded, stirring the lad to nobler efforts for his tribe than his ancestors had known, and pointing to the path to fame that civilization opened to him. The cere- mony concluded by drinking kava, and chanting histo- rical reminiscences of the lad's ancestors, — and thus we CONCESSIONS TO CIVILIZATION. 105 saved the lives of five hundred men ! During the whole of this ceremony, the old chief was much affected, and a few tears might be seen stealing down his cheeks. Soon however cheering up, he gave us a full account of the time when he came of age, and the number of people that were slain to celebrate the occasion.* Kuruduadua was still a heathen. He said that our religion was good, but there were few true Christians in the group, and he hated hypocrisy, and did not pro- fess to be better or anything else than he really was. He rather favoured than hindered the spread of the Gospel. On Sunday morning I heard him interroga- ting two men, whether they were Christians. On their answering in the affirmative, he reprimanded them for not attending the church service, as the drum — the substitute for bells — had left off beating for some time. We induced him to make several important concessions to civilization, to prohibit cannibalism throughout his territories, and to keep the Sunday as a day of rest, if not a holy day. To this he agreed cheerfully. Indeed he seemed most anxious to stand well with the whites, and one of the first explanations lie offered after our arrival was respecting an attack upon, and plunder of some white men, who resided on Namuka, an island seven miles west of Rewa. The attack and plunder was made * The custom of standing on corpses is mentioned by several writers on Fiji, and was probably practised throughout the group. Joseph Water- house, in his * Vah-ta-ah,' p. 32, a book full of facts not found elsewhere, describing the condition of Ban previous to its conversion to Christianity, says, " Down the next lane a young chief is trying on, for the first time since he was born, a narrow slip of native calico, as an indication that he now thinks himself a man. He stands on the corpse of one who has been killed to make his stepping-stone for the ceremony of the day." 106 A MISSION TO VITI. by a chief then at war with him. Long after peace had been re-established Kuruduadua became by ex- change the owner of some boxes that had been taken from JSTamuka, by the attacking party. Danford saw the danger of purchasing property thus taken, and advised Kuraduadua to get rid of it. However, his counsels were unheeded, and when at a future time the boxes were actually found in Kuruduadua's possession, the Ame- rican captain sent to punish the Namuka attack, fixed upon him, as one of the guilty party, and burned Navua, then full of valuable property of all sorts, honestly acquired from white traders. Several large 32-pound shots were knocking about the town, and served the children as playthings, whilst the ruins of fine large houses were still to be seen. Kuruduadua handed us a paper from his desk, drawn up by a white trader familiar with the whole affair, which he begged might be made known to our countrymen, in order to acquaint them with the real facts of the case. " OYALAU, November 27th, 1856. ' ' Being acquainted with many circumstances connected with the attack upon Namuka, and convinced that great injustice has been done to the chief Kuruduadua, living at Navua, by his being punished as an accessory to that act, I beg to lay before you the true particulars of the case as they came under my observation. " It has been stated that Kuruduadua was a party to the attack upon Namuka, because some of his people had been some time before driven away from that place by the whites. The facts were these : — Some canoes belonging to Kuruduadua's tribe, as was their custom when voyaging, put into Namuka to spend THE NAMUKA OUTRAGE. 107 the night. They caught some crabs,, and climbed some trees for cocoa-nuts, as they had always been accustomed to do, when the whites who had purchased permission to reside upon the island rushed out and fired upon them ; the natives imme- diately fled, leaving one canoe behind. This canoe, with the property in it, was handed over to me by Mr. Allen Dolittle, when I was residing at Nukubalawu, to return to Kuruduadua. When I took it to the chief, he was not at all displeased at his people having been driven away, and said that if they again annoyed the white residents at Namuka he would himself club them. ' { Some time after this, Tui Solia was knocked down by one of the whites on Namuka. Tui Solia was at this time at war with Kuruduadua. The latter heard, through a deserter, that Tui Solia intended to avenge the insult offered to him by plundering Namuka, and put the whites on their guard. He could not protect them there, as it was not in his territory, and he was at enmity with Tui Solia' s tribe. He told the whites to remove at once to Nukubalawu, into his dominions, where he would protect them from every harm. He was evidently very anxious to secure the whites from injury. Thus, so far from being privy to the attack, he endeavoured to save the whites. ' f I went at once to Namuka to warn the whites, and told them of Kuruduadua' s invitation to remove for protection to Nuku- balawu, and offered them the use of my boat, which they de- clined. I was then sent for by Mr. Saunders, to remove him from Wai Turaga to a vessel at Bau in which he had taken his passage. " Before I returned, the attack was made on Namuka, the property plundered and the white men carried prisoners to Numulo, a small town on the mainland, which belonged to Tui Solia. As soon as I heard this, I hastened to Nukubalawu and met there Mr. A. Dolittle. Finding that nothing had been done towards the rescue of the prisoners, I sent for Kuruduadua, and giving him an axe, requested him to undertake their de- 108 A MISSION TO VITI. liverance. He immediately complied, arranged to take a small armed party and make a sudden descent upon Numulo at early dawn. This lie did. The people of the town, panic struck, fled, and the chief was thus enabled to convey the wounded prisoners and some property to Namuka, where we had gone to await the result of the expedition. " It has been said that this chief was a party in the affair, because, at a subsequent period, some boxes, taken from Namuka, were seen in his house. They came into his posses- sion in this manner : some time after the Namuka outrage, Kuruduadua attacked and captured a town belonging to Tui Solia, the defeat causing the latter to sue for peace. Friendly intercourse being re-established, Kuruduadua subsequently ex- changed several pigs for boxes in Tui SohVs possession, and forming part of the plunder of Namuka* It is quite false that Tui Solia was at the time of the outrage under the influence of Kuruduadua ; so far from that, they were enemies and at war. " Kuruduadua has ever behaved kindly to the whites, and in this respect set a good example to other chiefs. Upon one occasion a vessel got ashore in the neighbourhood. He assem- bled his people, got her afloat, and made his subjects return the property they had taken, — this at a time when, in almost every other part of Fiji, the lives of the shipwrecked were taken and the vessel and cargo plundered. " I was present at Nukubalawu, when Mr. Williams, the American Consul, and Phillips, a Rewan chief, came to inquire into the Namuka matter. Mr. Dolittle said, that after buying the island of Namuka they were entitled to protection. Phillips, the chief, then emphatically denied that the island had been sold, but said that a gun, a keg of powder, and a whale's tooth had been given as the 'yaqona' for permission to reside on the island, and that he could not sell it, as there were others who were co-owners with himself. " JOHN HEEKES." NAVUA AND ITS BURES. 109 Navua is at present a collection of about forty houses, and built on the left bank of the river of the same name, and at the foot of a hill on which there is a pri- vate bure ni sa of the chief, enjoying a fine view of the flat land around, the river winding in bold curves, and high mountains in the distance. Two creeks inter- sect the town, over which isolated trunks of trees are thrown, the nearest approach to bridges I have seen in the country. In the two squares are several venerable Tahitian chestnut-trees (Inocarpus edulis, Forst.) densely covered with parasites (Loranthus), about a dozen spe- cies of epiphytical ferns, — one of them not larger than a moss, — wax-flowers, orchids, mosses, and lichens. There was no heathen temple (bure Jcalou\ but a fine one might be seen from the top of the hill, about a mile off. I noticed three lures ni sa, strangers' houses, or sleep- ing bures. At least two of the latter are invariably found at every Fijian town or village. They may be compared to our clubs; and those frequented by the ruling chiefs do not seem visited much by the lower class of people. That at Bau, already mentioned, was the largest I saw. All along the sides are sleeping- places, covered with fine mats, and large enough for two men to sleep ; and between each there is a fireplace, and stages to put the legs on. Overhead a good supply of firewood is stowed. The centre of the building is covered with loose grass, generally Co dina (Paspalum scrobiculatum, Linn.). There are no windows, only low doors, which may be, and are always closed towards evening, by means of thick mats, in order to keep the mosquitoes out. A large kava-bowl. and bamboo 110 A MISSION TO VITI. vessels filled with spring- water, seem to be the only utensils admitted. In buildings or bures like these, all the male population, married and unmarried, sleeps. The boys, until they have come of age, erect a bure of their own, often built on raised stages over the water, and approachable only by a long, narrow trunk of a tree. The women and girls sleep at home; and it is quite against Fijian etiquette for a husband to take his night's repose anywhere except at one of the public bures of his town or village, though he will go to his family soon after dawn. In the daytime the bures are generally deserted. Towards four o'clock people begin to pour in, and if any strangers arrive they will inva- riably take up their quarters at these places. Here po- litics and all events of the day are discussed, and when talking, the men, even high chiefs, will be plaiting cocoa- nut fibre into sinnet, so much used in the construction of houses, canoes, and arms. And a great deal these people have to talk about : the politics of the groups, inde- pendent of the new element introduced by the cession of the country to England, the never-ending intrigues of the Tonguese immigration, the endeavour of mission- aries, consuls, and traders to spread Christianity and civilization, are rather complicated, and give rise to a good deal of discussion and speculation. When evening is coming on, the bure is beginning to fill ; most of the fires between the sleeping-places are lit, and the natives are leisurely stretched on the mats, their legs cocked up the stages, like Yankees in a ta- vern— all smoking their cigarettes, made of self-grown tobacco and dry banana leaves. Now come the kava- LIFE IN THE BUKES. Ill chewers, comely-looking youngsters, carrying the large wooden bowl, a cocoa-nut shell for drinking the bever- age, the bamboo water- vessel, a handful of fibre for straining the kava, and the root of the South Sea pep- per from which it is prepared. No sooner have they taken their seat, and commenced chewing, taking care to throw the rope affixed to the kava-bowl toward the person highest in rank, than a leading man, perhaps a heathen priest, begins chanting a song, in which the whole assembly joins; and two young fellows beat time with little sticks, applied on a bamboo or any other sounding wood that happens to be handy. The leader of the chant does not sit motionless, but waves his body, arms, and hands in such a variety of ways, and with such extreme ease, that you fancy you can imitate him as readily as the whole assembly does. But the very first time you fail, to the great delight of your native spec- tators. His motions are not difficult, but you never know what they are going to be until it is too late to imitate, and he has already passed on to something else. The interest of this bye-play is thus well kept up, and the Fijians deserve full credit of having obtained hold of one of the great secrets of fixing the attention on an object, or making it, in other words, interesting. They know the art of concealing the end as long as possible. What would our novelists do without the use of this machinery ( How dull would life itself be if the future was unveiled to us ! The lads, having chewed a sufficient quantity of the root, place the masticated mass into the bowl. Now water is poured on, the whole yellowish-looking fluid 112 A MISSION TO VITI. strained through fibres, and a cup filled. Whilst the cup-bearer is holding it to hand to the chief or highest personage present, an old man gives the toast of the evening. It is pathetic or humorous, as occasion de- mands, and listened to with attention ; all singing and beating with sticks having ceased the moment the cup was filled. A general shout follows the conclusion of this toast, the cup is emptied in one draught, and thrown by the drinker on the mat, to be filled again and handed to the next in rank, until the whole assem- bly has been served. The song becomes less and less hearty, the conver- sation slackens, and one by one the men drop off to sleep. Strange sight ! Their pillows are made of a thick stick, have four legs, and are put just under the neck, so that the hair of the sleepers may not be de- ranged. They have had it only recently newly done up, washed with lime to make it frizzed like that of negroes, dyed in various colours, and arranged in many different ways. Several days must have been spent to get some of these extraordinary heads dressed. And for this reason — no other — they are ready to sleep all their lives on a pillow made of a stick of wood, and so constructed that a European could not rest his neck five minutes upon it without suffering dreadful pain. It is very fine talking about the ease of living in a state of nature, but the inconveniences to which savages put themselves in order to gratify their vanity are quite as great, if not greater, than those forced upon us by the fashions and dictates of our own society. Think of the agonies of tatooing ! What would the natives give to escape it, if TAT001NG. 113 society would let them ? But the stern laws of fashion allow of no exception. In Fiji this practice is confined to the women, the operation being performed by mem- bers of their own sex, and applied solely to the corners of the mouth, and those parts of the body covered by the scanty clothing worn by them. The skin is punc- tured by an instrument made of bone, or by the spines of the shaddock-tree ; whilst the dye injected into the punctures is obtained chiefly from the candle-nut. No reason is given for the adoption of the custom, beyond its being commanded by Degei, their supreme god. Neglect of this divine commandment is believed to be punished after death. The men probably refrain from tatooing, because their skin, generally speaking, is so dark that the designs would not be seen, and the pain- ful operation undergone would be mere labour thrown away. In Polynesia tatooing seems to have attained its cul- minating point in the Society Islands and the Mar- quesas, where both men and women submitted to it ; proceeding thence eastward to Samoa and Tonga, we find it restricted to the men ; in Fiji to the women, and altogether ceasing in the New Hebrides. Yet, strange to add, Polynesian tradition asserts that the custom was known in Fiji before its being adopted in Samoa and Tonga. Two goddesses, Taema and Tilafainga, swam from Fiji to Samoa, and on reach- ing the latter group, commenced singing, "Tatoo the men, but not the women."* Hence the two were worshipped as the presiding deities by those who * Turner's ' Nineteen Years in Polynesia,' p. 182. I 114 A MISSION TO VITI. followed tatooing as a trade ; for a trade it was and is, quite as much as tailoring is in our own country, and requiring by far greater care and caution. The blue tracery once made cannot, li'ke a coat or pair of trousers, be thrown aside when spoilt in the cut, but has to be worn for life, exposed to all the remarks which good and ill-natured friends may be disposed to make. A tradition, current in Tonga and Fiji, corroborates the fact of tatooing having been derived from the latter group. It is stated, that at a remote period the king of Tonga (Tui Toga) sent a mission to Fiji, in order to ascertain whether, as had been reported, the women of those islands were tatooed. On reaching the island of Ogea, in the eastern part of Fiji, the mission, with some difficulty, made the natives comprehend that they wished to find out what sex was tatooed (qia) ; to which the Fijians replied, " Qia na alewa " (women are tatooed). In obedience to orders, the first person met had been asked, and as a plain answer to a plain question had been obtained, the mission departed homewards. There were no other means of remembering the answer than by repeating it continually. This was done without interruption until their canoe reached the Ogea pas- sage, where, the sea becoming rough, apprehensions about the safety of the canoe began to be entertained, and in the ensuing excitement the repetition of the pre- cious words was neglected. Suddenly the neglect was perceived, and it was asked all round what the words were. Somebody replied, " Qia na tagane " (men are tatooed), instead of " Qia na alewa " (women are tatooed) ; which mistake, passing unnoticed, was re- KALOU RERE. 115 peated until the crew reached Tonga ; and on being reported to the king, he exclaimed, " Oh, it is men, not women that are tatooed ! well, then, 1 will be ta- tooed at once." The example set was speedily followed ; hence the custom, that in Fiji the women, in Tonga the men are tatooed ; hence also, adds the tradition, the name of the Ogea passage, " Qia na tagane."* Kuruduadua accompanied us on an exploring trip down the Navua river, which we found to have several deltas, one of which is called Deuba. We passed the mouth, and went several miles westward, as far as Vanua- clogo point, which is near Qamo peak. Close to one of the villages we stopped at there was a miniature temple, built of tree-fern wood, and thatched with Makita- leaves. Here parties of young men assemble for seve- ral weeks in order to practise certain tricks, which, when they are perfect in them, are exhibited before a numerous audience, but as long as they are practising nobody is supposed to go near them. On the day of the performance, the actors oil their bodies well and dress in white native cloth. The spectators, old and young, having formed a ring around them, the actors commence by chanting songs and beating time on bamboos, until they have worked themselves up to a certain pitch of excitement. Now a spirit (Kalou Eere) is supposed to enter them, and they pretend to be in- vulnerable to spear, proof against musket ball, and safe against the eifects of heat or flame. By sleight of * Another version of the tradition is given by Williams, 'Fiji and Fijians,' vol. i. p. 160, where a man, repeating the intelligence, violently strikes his foot against the stump of a tree, and in the confusion ensuing changes its tenor. I 2 116 A MISSION TO VITI. hand, they endeavour to make good their pretensions. A spearhead is softened so as not to hurt when thrown ; the ball put in the musket is too small, and thus rolls out when the actors begin to dance about previous to dis- charging it ; and the fiery oven into which a man creeps and allows himself to be covered up, has a tunnel and vent-hole, by which he has a chance of escaping. Acci- dents, however, will happen even in this well-regulated community. The spear unskilfully handled has been known to hurt; too much wadding put into the gun has prevented the ball from rolling out ; the tunnel has been apt to fall in, and after some hours the man who al- lowed himself to be thrown into it, has been found to be perfectly baked. The Kalou Here, with its high poles, streamers, evergreens, masquerading, trumpet-shells, chants, and other wild music, is the nearest approach to dramatic representation the Fijians seem to have made, and it is with them what private theatricals are with us. They are also on other occasions very fond of dressing themselves in fantastic, often very ridiculous costume ; and in nearly every large assembly there are buffoons. Court fools, in many instances hunchbacks, are often attached to a chiefs establishment. Finding that Kuruduadua was a man in whom con- fidence could be placed, we made arrangements for going to Namosi, so as to connect the discoveries of Macdonald and Samuel Waterhouse with the southern coast of Viti Levu; but, as the weather had become extremely boisterous, and heavy rains had rendered travelling in the interior impossible, we determined to wait for more favourable weather, and return at once to Lado. DEPARTURE FROM NAVUA. 117 As a heavy south-east gale was blowing, the chief told us we should not be able to proceed very far, and he hoped that if on reaching the sea we should find it too boisterous, we would not mind coming back. We were out of tea, biscuit, and all the other necessaries a European requires, unable to walk about, — the heavy rain having rendered the neighbourhood of Navua a perfect swamp, — and tired of staying indoors and wait- ing for the weather to clear up; so we left on the morning of the 9th of July. The sea was rougher than we had expected. We had to bale constantly, and therefore effected a landing on the sandy beach, and walked to Taguru, where we had to stay two days. The boat, lightened, reached the place with difficulty. On the third day the gale and rain, which now had lasted a week, abated, and we pushed on once more. Calling at Naigani Island, we heard from Mr. Work, whom we found quite established in his new home, that the Kau karo, or itchwood, the poisonous properties of which had caused Mr. Eggerstrom to be ill for two months, grew on the banks of a small river of Viti Levu, nearly opposite the island. We at once made up our mind to fetch specimens, in order to ascertain the real name of the tree. We had no difficulty in finding it, and it proved to be Oncocarpus Vitiensis, A. Gray, or, as Fos- ter nearly a hundred years ago called it, Ehus atrum. There was a considerable village about a mile and a half up the river, which we could reach in our gig. The inhabitants looked dreadfully unhealthy; most of the men had elephantiasis, and many of the children were covered with ulcers. No doubt the site of the 118 A MISSION TO VITI. village in a low valley in a great measure accounted for .this. We were roving over the hills, when a message from Ovalau reached us with the glad tidings that Colonel Smythe had safely arrived in Levuka, and was desirous of seeing us. Without loss of time we returned to Mr. Work's house, left it after midnight, and reached Mataisuva at eight o'clock in the morning, where we breakfasted with our kind friend Mr. Moore. There had been some trouble with the natives. An Englishman had run away with the wife of a Viwa chief, and refused to give her up. The chief, justly exasperated, threatened revenge, and would have proceeded to extremities, if Mr. Moore had not persuaded the Rewa chief, in whose territory the eloped one resided, to step in, on the grounds that the Viwa chief had no right to cause a disturbance on territories not his own. They referred the case to Mr. Pritchard, who remonstrated with the white man, tell- ing him that if he, an Englishman, was clubbed in consequence of the provocation given, no government could possibly ask for satisfaction; and on the other hand, that if no notice were taken of his murder, the lives of the other whites would be in danger. So the woman must instantly be given up. We had hoped to reach Lado that day, but the loss of time caused by this troublesome man delayed our departure until noon. We again passed through the Rewa river and the Kele musu canal, and towards sun- set reached Kaba, where we took up our quarters at the house of Peter, a Tonguese teacher connected with the Wesleyan mission. Pie was a fine specimen of his race, A TONGAMAN SAVED FROM DROWNING. 119 and made us as comfortable as his means permitted. This man and a boy had been saved from drowning by our interpreter, Mr. Charles Wise, whom he wel- comed with cordiality. When picked up at sea, he had been several days in the water — incredible as it may appear. His canoe had been upset, and his companions, all good swimmers, had against his entreaties separated from him, and they had all perished, being probably eaten by sharks These animals were furious in their attacks, and Peter killed several of them with his knife during the time he was in the water ; they troubled him little during the night, but became very rapacious as soon as daylight was established. He was also at- tacked by a small sea-animal which bored regular holes into his flesh, and would have caused his death if he had not been speedily delivered. When Wise took him on board, he was perfectly exhausted, and continually cried for water. Every means were used to restore his strength ; his body was oiled, and food and drink given to him. When the moon rose we took our departure, and early next morning reached Lado Alewa, in Port Kin- naird. 120 CHAPTER VII. ARRIVAL OF COLONEL SMYTHE FROM NEW ZEALAND. THE ' PEGASUS ' AND ' PAUL JONES.' — VISIT TO BAU. QUARRELSOME DISPOSITION OF THE CHIEF OF THE FISHERMEN. — CESSION OF FIJI TO ENGLAND. — FIRST OFFICIAL INTERVIEW WITH THE KING. THE native war in New Zealand continuing and keep- ing all available naval force employed, Colonel Smythe had been unable to obtain a Government vessel to take him to and about Fiji, and had therefore been compelled to charter the ' Pegasus,' an extremely slow- sailing, ill-manned ketch, commanded by a gossiping captain, who ultimately returned to New Zealand with- out paying even the crew, which the British Consul had been obliged to put on board. Mr. Pritchard and myself called on Colonel Smythe on the 16th of July, and regretted to hear of his long and stormy passage. He had arrived on the 5th of July, and we found him comfortably quartered at Levuka, in the house of Mr. Binner. Mrs. Smythe was making a water-colour draw- ing of the Levuka reef, which from Mr. Binner's house, situated as it is on the top of a hill, displays itself in all its grandeur, and together with the little islands at a distance, and the shipping of the port, forms a pano- rama not easily matched. The ' Pegasus ' not having accommodation for more THE 'PEGASUS' AND 'PAUL JONES.' 121 than Colonel and Mrs. Smythe, Mr. Pritchard and my- self chartered the ' Paul Jones,' the same little schooner which fetched me from Somosomo. She was scarcely better than an open boat, and we had to wash, dress, and take our meals on deck, the cabin being too small to hold more than two bunks, an apology for a table, and two lockers serving also as substitutes for benches. But we managed very well, and as she beat the ' Pega- sus ' even in short distances by whole days, we generally reached our destination long before Colonel Smythe's party did, and soon transferred our abode on shore. When I came from Somosomo she was swarming with cockroaches, to such an alarming extent that there was no staying in her ; and when going to sleep we had to cover our faces, to screen at least that part of our bodies against attack. But she had since been sunk under water, — the only method here practised to free vessels from that pest, — newly painted, and done up, so that as far as her size would allow she was tolerably comfort- able. Besides Mr. Storck, we had Mr. Charles Wise, the consular interpreter, on board, a half-caste who had been brought up by the late Rev. John Hunt, for whose me- mory he entertained a warm admiration, justly shared by all who knew that excellent man. It was arranged with Colonel Smythe, that we should visit the principal chiefs, commencing at Bau, the capi- tal of the group. The two vessels met at Port Kin- naird ; and we finally left Lado, at that time the Con- sul's residence, on the 24th of July, at noon. The 'Paul Jones ' anchored off Bau on the same day, but the ' Pe- gasus,' to give an instance of her bad sailing qualities, only arrived on the following day late at night. 122 A MISSION TO VITI. There was a serious quarrel between the Chief of the Fishermen and Ratu Abel, the King's eldest son, the former having insulted the Queen, and the latter sent him a challenge in consequence. A duel was impend- ing when we arrived, and the British Consul's persuasive powers were appealed to by various parties. Mr. Prit- chard publicly asked the Chief of the Fishermen why he had offered the insult to his sovereign, but he re- fused to answer ; Mr. Frit chard then told him he would wait for an answer, even if he had to sit up all night. The Chief, seeing that the Consul was as good as his word, and that there was no escape possible, after a si- lence of two hours gave the desired answer, begged the King's pardon, and all was arranged amicably. Ratu Abel was present during the whole interview, and be- haved extremely well in the affair. He is a fine specimen of a Fijian prince, and will doubtless succeed his father to the throne, though some of the missionaries have been trying to persuade the King to change the law, by settling the succession upon his younger son, born after he had become converted to Christianity, and married according to our rites. But such a change would doubt- less lead to endless complications and confusion, and be unjust towards a child perfectly legitimate accord- ing to the custom prevailing at the time of his birth. It is in petty interferences like these that, doubtless much to the regret of the enlightened minds composing the Board directing the truly grand machinery of the Wesleyan Society, the missionaries draw upon themselves the censure of people who fully sympathize with the noble work they have in hand, and who would do any- THE CHIEF OF THE FISHERMEN. 123 thing in their power to advance their true interest. Be it known, that interference in politics on the part of the "Wesleyan missionaries is decidedly disapproved of by their Board at home, and that stringent instructions are published to that effect. The Chief of the Fishermen, an important body in Bau, is a scheming fellow, who more than once caused mischief. On one occasion, when some British interest was involved, Mr. Pritchard, who, born and bred in Polynesia, is perfectly familiar with native modes of thought, and owes a great deal of his influ- ence to it, wished to impress the chief with the idea that whatever plots he was hatching they were sure to be found out by those more clever than himself.* In- stead of stating this in such language as one European would use to another, he said to the native, " As Chief of the Fishermen, you know all the fishes, the small as well as the big, and of course the turtle, according to your notions the king of the whole." The Chief smiled assent, flattering himself that by the turtle he himself was alluded to. To the great delight of the bystanders, the Consul continued : — " Familiar with all * Commodore J. B. Seymour, writing to the Lords Commissioners of the Admiralty, in a letter dated, Auckland, September 2, 1861, and pub- lished in the ' Correspondence relating to the Fiji Islands,' presented to both Houses of Parliament by command of her Majesty, May, 1862, seemed also favourably impressed with Mr. Pritchard's way of dealing with the natives : — " I cannot conclude this letter," he writes, " without expressing the obligations I am under to Mr. Pritchard, whose manner with the native chiefs (being neither too deferential nor the reverse) seemed to me to be exactly what it should be. He speaks the language, and is evidently liked by all parties of Fijians ; and without his ready assist- ance ... it would havebeen impossible to arrive at so speedy a settlement of affairs." 124 A MISSION TO VITI. its habits, you are aware that at certain periods this king goes on shore to lay its eggs, and you, knowing its way, look for its footprints on the white coral sand of the beaches, and suddenly light upon what is hatching.'' No further amplification was required to make the chief comprehend the drift of the story. The bystanders saw at a glance that the chief had put his foot in it the moment he identified himself with the king of the fishes, and that his plots were so clumsily constructed that anybody who knew him could easily trace them out. The public interview with King Cakobau, or Tha- kornbau, was to take place on the 27th of July, when he would once more confirm the cession of his country made to Great Britain in 1858, through Mr. W. Prit- chard. In order to place the whole subject fairly before the reader, it will be necessary to insert here the ori- ginal deed of cession: — " Cession of Fiji to England, and Ratification of it l>ij the Chief*. " EBENEZEE THAKOMBAU, by the grace of God, sovereign chief of Ban and its dependencies, Vunivalu of the armies of Fiji, and Tui Viti, etc., to all and singular to whom these pre- sents shall come, greeting. " Whereas we, being duly, fully, and formally recognized in our aforesaid state, rank, and sovereignty, by Great Britain, France, and the United States of America, respectively ; " And having full and exclusive sovereignty and domain in and over the islands and territories constituting, forming, and being included in the group known as Fiji, or Viti ; " And being desirous to procure for our people and subjects a good and permanent form of government, whereby our afore- said people and subjects shall enjoy and partake of the benefits, the prosperity, and the happiness, which it is the duty and thu DEED OF CESSION. 125 right of all sovereigns to seek and to procure for their people and subjects ; " And being in ourselves unable to procure and provide such good and permanent government for our aforesaid people and subjects; " And being, moreover, in ourselves unable to afford to our aforesaid people and subjects the due protection and shelter from the violence, the oppression, and the tyranny of foreign Powers, which it is the duty and the right of all sovereigns to afford to their people and subjects ; " And being heavily indebted to the President and Govern- ment of the United States of America, the liquidation of which. indebtedness is pressingly urged, with menaces of severe mea- sures against our person, and our sovereignty, and our islands and territories aforesaid, unless the aforesaid indebtedness be satisfied within a period so limited as to render a compliance with the terms of the contract forced upon us utterly impos- sible within the said period; this said inability not arising from lack of resources within our dominions, but from the inefficacy of any endeavours on our part under the existing state of affairs in our islands and territories aforesaid, to carry out such measures as are necessary for, and would result in, the ultimate payment of the aforesaid claims; and having maturely deliberated, well weighed, and fully considered, the probable results of the course and the measures we now pro- pose ; and being fully satisfied of the impracticability by any other course and measures to avert from our islands and terri- tories aforesaid, and our people and subjects aforesaid, the evils certain to follow the non-payment of the sum of money de- manded from us by the Government of the United States of America ; " And being confident of the immediate and progressive benefits that will result from the cession herein now made of our sovereignty, and our islands and territories aforesaid ; ' ' Now know ye, that we do hereby, for and in consideration of certain conditions, terms, and engagements, hereinafter set forth, make over, transfer, and convey, unto Victoria, by the 126 A MISSION TO VITI. grace of God, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, etc., her heirs and successors for ever, the full sovereignty and domain in and over our aforesaid islands and territories, together with the actual proprietorship and personal ownership in certain pieces or parcels of land as may hereafter be mutually agreed upon by a commission, to consist of two chiefs from Great Britain and two chiefs from Fiji ; the said commis- sion to be appointed by the representative of Great Britain in Fiji, who, in case of dispute, shall himself be umpire ; the said pieces or parcels of land to be especially devoted to government purposes, and to be applied and appropriated in manner and form appertaining to Crown lands in British colonies, or as the local government of Fiji, appointed by commission from the aforesaid Victoria, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland aforesaid, may deem fit, proper, and neces- sary, for the use and requirements of the said local govern- ment; " Provided always, and the cession of our sovereignty and our islands and territories is on these conditions, terms, and considerations, that is to say ; " That the aforesaid Victoria, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland aforesaid, shall permit us to retain the title and rank of Tui Viti, in so far as the aboriginal popu- lation is concerned, and shall permit us to be at the head of the department for governing the aforesaid aboriginal population, acting always under the guidance, and by the counsels, of the representative of Great Britain and head of the local govern- ment appointed by commission from the aforesaid Victoria, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland aforesaid ; " That the aforesaid Victoria, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland aforesaid, shall pay the sum of forty-five thousand dollars (§45,000) unto the President of the United States of America, being the amount of the claim de- manded from us, procuring for us and for our people a full and absolute acquittance from any further liabilities to the said President or Government of the United States of America aforesaid ; DEED OF CESSION. 127 " For and in consideration of which outlay, not less than two hundred thousand (200,000) acres of land, if required, shall be made over, transferred, and conveyed, in fee- simple, unto Victoria, aforesaid Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland aforesaid : the selection of which said land shall be made by the commission hereinbefore named and re- ferred to, to reimburse the immediate outlay required to liqui- date the aforesaid claim of the President and Government of the United States of America ; ' ' And we, the aforesaid Ebenezer Thakombau, by the grace of God, sovereign chief of Bau and its dependencies, Vunivalu of the armies of Fiji and Tui Yiti, etc., do hereby make this cession, transfer, and conveyance, of our sovereignty, and of our islands and territories aforesaid, unto the aforesaid Victoria, by the grace of God, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, etc., aforesaid, her heirs and successors for ever, on behalf of ourselves, our heirs and successors for ever; on behalf of our chiefs, their heirs and successors for ever ; on behalf of our people and subjects, their heirs and suc- cessors for ever ; hereby renouncing all right, title, and claim unto our sovereignty, islands, and territories aforesaid, in so far as herein stated ; " In witness whereof, we have hereunto set our hand and affixed our seal, this twelfth day of October, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and fifty-eight. his S^\ TUI vm, x (L.S.J mark. \^^^y " Signed, sealed, and ratified by the aforesaid Tui Viti, and by him formally delivered, in our presence, unto William Thomas Pritchard, Esq., Her Britannic Majesty's Consul in and for the aforesaid Fiji ; the aforesaid Tui Viti, at the same time, affirming and admitting to us personally, that he the said Tui Viti fully, wholly, perfectly, and explicitly, under- stands and comprehends the meaning, the extent, and the purpose of the foregoing document, or deed of cession ; and I, the undersigned John Smith Fordham, formerly of Sheffield, 128 A MISSION TO VITI. England, but now temporarily residing at Bau, Fiji, aforesaid, do hereby solemnly affirm that I myself, folly, wholly, and ex- plicitly translated the foregoing deed of cession unto the said Tui Viti, in the presence of the aforesaid AVilliam Thomas Pritchard, Esq., Her Britannic Majesty's Consul in and for the said Fiji, Robert Sherson Swanston, Esq., His Hawaiian Ma- jesty's Consul in and for Fiji aforesaid, and John Binner, for- merly of Leeds, England, but now resident at Levuka, Island of Ovalau, Fiji, aforesaid. " In witness whereof, we have each and all set our respective names and seals, this twelfth (12th) day of October, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and fifty-eight afore- said. "JoHN SMITH FORDHAM, Wesleyan Missionary. JOHN BINNER, Wesleyan Mission Trainer. EGBERT S. SWANSTON, Hawaiian Consul, Fiji. WILLIAM T. PRITCHARD, H. B. M. Consul." " We hereby acknowledge, ratify, and renew, the cession of Fiji to Great Britain, made on the 12th day of October, 1858, by Thakombau. In witness whereof we have hereto affixed our names this 14th day of December, 1859. "RABICI ROKO Tui DREKETI (his x mark), of Rewa, JIGJI NANOVO (his x mark), of Nadroga. NA WAGA LEVU (his x mark), of Rakiraki. Tui LEVUKA (his x mark), of Ovalau. KOROI COKANAUTO (his x mark), of Bau. KOROI TUBUNA (his x mark), of Tavua. NAIBUKA KOROIKASA (his x mark), of Nakelo. RATU ISIKELE (signed), of Viwa. TUKANA (his x mark), of Noco. TUBAVIVI (his x mark), of Rakiraki. CURUICA (his x mark), of Korotuma, Ra Coast. SESEBUALALA (his x mark), of Korotubu. TUDRAU (his x mark), of Dravo. SAMISONI (signed), of Viwa. NA GALU (his x mark), of Namena. RATIFICATION OF CESSION. 129 " KOROIEAIYANUYANU (his x mark), of Lasakau. DABEA (his x mark), of Kuku, Yiti Levu. Ko MAI YUNIVESI (liis x mark), of Nakelo. PITA PAULA (his x mark), of Viwa. Tui BUA (his x mark), of Bua. THAKOMBAU (his x mark), of Fiji. ' f We hereby certify that the foregoing chiefs have signed this document with a full understanding of its meaning, in our presence, this 14th day of December, 1859. "H-r. CAMPION, Commander, B.N., H.M.S. Elk. WILL. T. PRITCHARD, H.B.M. Consul. " We hereby certify that we translated the foregoing docu- ment to the Chiefs who have signed, and that they thoroughly understand its meaning. " W. COLLIS, Wesleyan Mission Training Master. E. P. MARTIN, Wesleyan Mission Printer. " January 16th, 1860, at Levuka. "KiTOVA (his x mark), of Macuata. Tui CAKAU (his x mark), of Taviuni. Tui BUA (his x mark), of Bua. " Witness to marks : ' ' JOHN CAIRNS, Owner of ' Lalla Lookh/ and Merchant of Melbourne. "Tui TAVUKI (his x mark). Tui BUKELEVU (his x mark). Tui YAME (his x mark). Tui NAKASALEKA (his x mark), per Qarinivalu of Nukuraleka. YERI LEVU (his x mark), of Yali. EATU SAVUNOKO (his x mark), of Ono and Januiana. Tui NACEVA (his x mark). Witness to Tui Naceva's mark, C. J. Baird. K 130 A MISSION TO VITI. " Translated by us, before whom the above Chiefs made their marks, this 15th day of August, 1860 : " JAMES S. H. ROYCE; CHAELES WISE. " I hereby ratify the above cession, Navua, Sept. 4th, 1860. " KUEUDUADUA, (his x mark) . " Witnesses to signature : " BEETHOLD SEEMANN, Ph.D. ; W. T. PEITCHAED, Consul." Precisely at eleven o'clock on the morning of the 27th of July, the King fired a salute. When arriving at the place of meeting, the royal residence, we found the King and Queen, both dressed in European fashion, the former in a blue uniform, seated on chairs, of which several had been arranged in a semicircle for our use. There were present, besides Colonel Smythe, Mr. Pritchard and my- self, Messrs. Fordham and Collis from the mission, not to mention the ladies. Ratu Abel, the King's eldest son, a fine-looking fellow, was absent, but sent for, and the chiefs and principal landholders soon dropped in, all dressed in native costume. Mr. Fordham interpreted for Colonel Smythe, Mr. Charles Wise for Mr. Pritchard. I wrote down all at the time, and the following, obtained from both sources, may be regarded as a faithful resume of what was spoken : — " It having been represented to Her Britannic Ma- jesty," said Colonel Smythe, addressing King Cakobau, " that the King and Chiefs of Fiji are disposed to become British subjects, her Majesty has directed an inquiry to be made into the matter, and hear what King and Chiefs have to say on the subject, in order that it may be reported to her." OFFICIAL MEETING AT BAU. 131 The King replied : " The arrangement respecting the cession entered into with Mr. Consul Pritchard is still in full force, and shall not be disturbed by any foreign Power." " Great Britain," continued Colonel Smythe, " pro- duces many things that Fiji does not, and vice versa, so that by an exchange of products the two countries would be mutually benefited. I refer especially to cotton, which grows luxuriantly in Fiji, and is valuable in England." The King replied : "I am fully aware of it ; and in consequence of what Mr. Consul Pritchard told me at the interview7 at Levuka, about the desirableness of cul- tivating this article, I have directed it to be planted, and my commands have been carried out to some extent." " In cedin'g the country," Colonel Smythe resumed, " every man will retain his own property and land, and everybody will be protected, so that a stop will be put to the fearful feuds that have decimated the population." The King rejoined: "There may be people in the group who at present cannot fully appreciate that idea ; but it is somewhat like Christianity, which, though a blessing, is looked upon with prejudiced eyes by many not familiar with its beneficial tendency." When the chiefs and landholders were asked whether they had any observation to make, they remained mute, and at the conclusion of the whole raised shouts of approval. All then retired, and nothing more was said except what has been stated in substance above. Colo- nel Smythe states, in one of his official communications, as printed in the Blue-books, that the King " could not K 2 132 A MISSION TO VITI. convey to Her Majesty 200,000 acres of land as con- sideration for the payment of these claims for him, as he does not possess them, nor does he acknowledge to have offered more than his consent that lands to this extent might be acquired by Her Majesty's Government for public purposes in Fiji." Nothing to this effect was broached during the official interview ; on the contrary, the King distinctly said, that " the arrangement respect- ing the cession entered into with Mr. Consul Pritchard is still in full force." Nor was the Consul aware that Colonel Smythe had on any other occasion elicited in- formation from the King that could be thus construed. It was perfectly well understood by all the leading chiefs that each and all would have to make over a certain portion of land, in payment of the debt fastened upon them by the American Government ; and Bau, and King Cako- bau as its representative, would have borne his share to make up the 200,000 acres. The very fact that all the chiefs, without any exception, and even those living in the remotest districts, ratified the deed of cession, proves that King Cakobau was backed by all the influence of his country, and had a perfect right to cede the sove- reignty of the islands.* * In order to place this fact beyond dispute, I have printed the names of all those chiefs who ratified the deed of cession, — this ratification being a document omitted in the Blue-book on Fiji. Some information as to the real position of Bau in Fiji will be found at pp. 74-80 of the present work. 133 CHAPTER VIII. EXCURSIONS TO KOROIVAU AND NAMAEA. — DEPARTUEE FEOM BAU. — PAS- SAGE THROUGH THE GEEAT EIVEE OF VITI LEVU. — BUEETU. — APOSTATE CHBISTIANS. — EEWA. — ARRIVAL AT TAVUKI, ZADAVU. — WHALE SHIPS. — ATTEMPT TO ASCEND BUKE LEVU. — THE ISTHMUS OF KADAVU. — GA LOA OR BLACK DUCK BAY. — DEPARTURE FOR NAVUA. I TOOK advantage of our stay at Ban, which lasted till the 2nd of August, to pay several visits to Namara, Koroivau, and several other parts of Viti Levu. There was a fine pyramidal temple at Namara, no longer used for religious purposes, and near it was standing an iso- lated Fan-palm (Pritchardia Pacifica, Seem, et Wendl.)y both objects peculiarly Fijian. The natives here were extremely friendly, and carried us through bogs and mud when occasion required. At first, the children, on seeing our white faces, were much frightened, and some boys and girls from twelve to fourteen years old would run for their lives when we attempted to get near them or even looked hard at them. However, they soon got reconciled to our colour, or rather want of colour, and a few jew's-harps and beads, judiciously distributed, would make them as happy as kings and quite attached to us. The women were busy grating the seeds of the Ivi (Inocarpus edulis, Forst), now ripe, and made into bread. The hill-sides were planted with a great number 134 A MISSION TO VITI. of pine-apples and cassava-root, and around nearly all the yam, banana, and sweet-potato patches I observed the cotton-trees, which had been planted by order of the King and at Mr. Pritchard's instigation. The village of Koroivau was a complete cotton garden ; the trees were twelve to fourteen feet high, and formed regular ave- nues in the streets. In my rambles in the forest I met with some natives who were clearing pieces of ground for cultivation. They were extremely friendly, and invited me to partake of some wild yams ("Tivoli") which they had just been roasting in the hot ashes. I gladly availed myself of their offer, and found the roots like cultivated yams, and quite as good in taste. Though no smoker myself, I carried a pipe and tobacco, which passed from mouth to mouth, every one having a few puffs and then passing it on to his neighbour; and when I intimated to them that the pipe was theirs, and presented an ad- ditional stick of American tobacco, they were highly pleased, and hoped that I would soon come again to " gather leaves." In the swampy parts of the forest I found a new Aroideous plant, the Viu kana (Cyrto- sperma edulis, Schott) under cultivation. Like the Taro, or Dalo, as it is here termed, which it somewhat re- sembles, its root is edible, and very much used. We left Bau on the 2nd of August, early in the morn- ing, our party consisting of Colonel and Mrs. Smythe, Mr. and Miss Pritchard, Mr. Collis and myself, all embarked in two boats belonging to the mission, and proceeding to Rewa by way of the river and the canal, a route, it will be remembered, which Mr. Pritchard and myself took on a former occasion. After two or three days' rain APOSTATE CHRISTIANS. 135 and gale, there was a temporary lull in the weather, and our trip was altogether a pleasant one. About noon we halted at Buretu, a fortified town, which has never been taken, and is therefore regarded as impregnable. If it is so, that must be owing entirely to the bravery of its inhabitants, for the low walls with which it was sur- rounded did not impress us with any great strength. Some years ago a good number of the Buretu people embraced Christianity, but when at a subsequent date the town rebelled against Bau, they became apostates, nor did the restoration of peace make them relinquish their pagan religion, and they had at the time of our visit, one of the finest temples in the whole group. These and similar fluctuations must be expected in all attempts to introduce a new faith, but from which Fiji has been more free than many other countries similarly operated upon. Wherever Christianity was preached in the group it took a quick and firm hold, and the ultimate conversion of the whole population is merely a matter of time and £. s. d. If the Wesleyan Society had more funds at its disposal, so as to be able to send out a greater number of efficient teachers, a very few years would see the whole of Fiji christianized, as all the real difficulties formerly in the way of the mission have now been removed. On my representing the case in this light, his Majesty the King of Hanover was graciously pleased to subscribe as his first gift, £100, towards so desirable an object, at the same time expressing his ad- miration for the labours of individual missionaries I named. If the Fijis should be taken by any European government, the prosperity of the country would best be 136 A MISSION TO VITI. advanced by placing ample funds at the disposal of the Protestant missionaries for the christianization of the natives, for which the machinery as now worked by the Wesleyans would offer the most efficient and readiest means. The Catholics would probably effect the christian- izing part with a lesser outlay, but it must not be forgot- ten that one of the great advantages of Protestant mis- sions is, that they civilize as well as christianize, whilst the Catholic priests, having no home, no family life to exhibit for imitation, simply christianize. We reached Rewa, or rather Mataisuva, the mission station, about three o'clock in the afternoon, and were scarcely sheltered in safety, Colonel Smythe and his wife with Mr. Waterhouse, the chairman of the Fijian dis- trict of the Wesleyan mission, Mr. Pritchard and all the rest of us, with Mr. Moore, than a strong south-east- erly gale, accompanied a heavy rain, commenced, which lasted for six days. Our vessels had been ordered to round the south-east extremity of Viti Levu, and call for us at Rewa ; but this bad weather had baffled all their attempts, and the ' Paul Jones ' thought it best to endeavour to come through the canal, which connects the two branches of the great river of Viti Levu, — an attempt which proved quite successful. At Rewa, a meeting of all the chiefs and landholders was held, and the same proceedings gone through as at Bau. All expressed themselves in favour of ceding their country to England in the manner already detailed. Amongst those assembled was a son, still a boy, of Cakonauto, better known amongst the whites as Philips, a chief friendly to civilization and the whites. During AMERICAN WHALE-SHIPS. 137 his lifetime, he had accumulated a great number of European and American manufactures, curious clocks, musical boxes, etc., but on inquiry I found that all these things had become scattered. His son would ultimately succeed to the chieftainship, and was made a great deal of by his people. At present the government was in other hands. He was a comely-looking youth, of a much lighter complexion than the rest of his countrymen. The ' Pegasus ' being again late, Mr. Prit chard and I started for Kadavu (Kandavu), the largest of the south- ernmost islands of the group. Leaving Eewa road on the 13th of August at six P.M., we made Tavuki Bay, on the northern side of the island, at seven o'clock on the following morning, where we took up our quarters under the hospitable roof of Mr. Eoyce, one of the resi- dent missionaries. In consequence of the strong south- easterly gale, the temperature was very agreeable, and during the previous week Mr. Royce observed the ther- mometer to go down to 62° Fahrenheit, the lowest ever observed in the group. There were three American whaleships in the bay, taking in wood, water, and fresh provisions, commanded by Captain James Nicols, Charles Nicols, and Thomas Sulivan. They had been nearly all their lives in the South Sea whaling trade, and were very well known to Mr. Pritchard when he was at Samoa. Their business had evidently been a lucrative one, and this was to be one of their last, if not their last voyage. They had hitherto taken in their supplies at Samoa or Tonga, but the natives of those two groups had become so ex- 138 A -MISSION TO VITI. orbitant in their charges as to render it imperative to look for cheaper provision markets. Fiji had answered their purpose much better, and they predicted the arrival of a regular whaling fleet as soon as the great facilities here offered should have become more generally known amongst the trade. Having their families with them, they gave us several pressing invitations to come on board, which the Consul, myself, and all the mission- aries gladly accepted. These vessels enjoyed the repu- tation of being patterns of what whaleships should be ; and I must record my surprise at the scrupulous neat- ness, cleanliness, and even elegance prevailing. The Captain's cabins were fitted up and kept better than I have ever seen them in any vessel. When our friends heard that we were anxious to ascend Buke Levu, the great mountain situated at the western extremity of Kadavu, they offered us one of their whale-boats for that purpose; and one of their mates, a skilful steerer, volunteered to pilot us to the foot of the mountain. Mr. Frit chard and I left Tavuki 13th of August early in the morning. It was quite fine when we started, but after an hour's pull, a gale sprang up, and after being nearly swamped in going through a narrow passage of a reef, where the water was breaking, we were compelled to postpone our at- tempt to a more favourable time, and land at Yawe, a town famous in Fiji for its very large specimens of pottery, made without a wheel, and taking as our crockery does, its name from the place of manufacture. We hoped that it might clear up during the night, to allow us to proceed in the morning ; but the next day TONGUESE INTRIGUES. 139 the rain was more heavy than it had been even during the previous one. and we had no option but to return to Tavuki. During the night our interpreter had heard that a circular letter had been received from the Ton- guese chief Maafu, advising his countrymen how to act, so that the policy of England with regard to the cession of Fiji might be frustrated, and the country ultimately fall into the hands of Tonga ; and also that a similar letter had been sent to Bega (Mbenga). The Tonguese teachers in the pay of the Wesley an Society were made the agents for diffusing the burden of the message. When we got back to Tavuki Mr. Pritchard communi- cated what we had heard to Mr. Koyce, and he sent for one of the leading Tonguese teachers, who made no secret of these machinations, and promised to procure the letter received in Kadavu. Ere two hours had elapsed he succeeded, and it is now in the Consulate. Mr. Royce pointed out the impropriety of teachers of the Christian religion allowing themselves to be used as tools in miserable political intrigues; but the Ton- guese said that, however glad to be excused, they could not help themselves, and had to do what their chiefs told them. The doings of the Tonguese form an impor- tant chapter in the history of the Fijis, and will be treated under a separate heading, and I merely mention here this fact, because it has been disputed that the teachers allowed themselves to be used as political agents. Tavuki, from being made the centre of the mission of the district, must be regarded as the capital of Kadavu, and is situated in latitude 19° 3' 9" south, longitude 140 A MISSION TO V1TI. 178° 6' 23" east, according to observation taken by Mr. Sedmond, master of H.M.S. Harrier, 17, Captain Sir Malcolm McGregor. Tavuki is an open bay on the northern coast, with no deep water close to the shore, and at ebb tide one has to walk about half a mile over the coral reef before being able to reach the boats. The missionaries had endeavoured to make a pier, on which those whom the chiefs would wish to punish for any petty offences were made to work ; but at the time of our visit little progress had been made, and one could almost have wished that a greater number of petty offences had been committed. The island of Kadavu, of which so little is known, and no accurate hydrographical survey exists, is highly cultivated, notwithstanding its being so hilly, and rising on its western extremity four thousand feet high. A strong belief has sprung up that there must be gold, and old gold-diggers from the Australian colonies, judg- ing from the formation of the quartz rocks, maintain that the island is auriferous. Quite recently Kadavu has been examined by two miners from Melbourne, who certainly did find a quartz reef, but not the pre- cious metal they were in search of. The fact of the matter is, that neither of these parties had the means to provide themselves with proper tools for a thorough and final exploration. The discovery of gold has ac- tually been reported from Vanua Levu. The popula- tion of Kadavu, said to number about ten thousand, is a mixture between the Fijian and Tonguese races, all of whom, with the exception of seven individuals, have nominally become Christians. The island is twenty- ISTHMUS OF YARABALE. 141 four miles long, stretching from east to west, and being contracted about the centre into the narrow isthmus of Yarabali, literally " Haul-across," so named from the fact of canoes and boats being dragged across it, in order to save the trouble and escape the danger of a long pas- sage around the east and west point. Colonel Smythe and myself, in company with Mr. Royce, crossed it on the 16th of August, and found the northern portion of the isthmus a fine avenue of cocoa-nut palms, the south- ern more or less a mangrove swamp. A similar short cut for canoes is effected at Naceva Bay in Vanua Levu. On both sides of Yarabali there is a bay ; the northern, Na Malata, is shallow and open ; the southern, Ga loa, has deep water, good anchorage, and three passages through the reef outside, which acts as a natural break- water. We found its shores full of pumice-stone, drifted here from the Tongan volcanoes. The different explor- ing expeditions having quite overlooked this fine bay, Mr. Pritchard made a rough survey in 1858, it being not improbable that if the much discussed communication between Sydney and Western America — the shortest route to England — should be established vid Fiji, steam- ers would prefer calling at this southernmost bay, with plenty of sea-room outside, to running the risk of en- tering the labyrinth of rocks, shoals, and reefs, which render the navigation of the central parts of the group, in the absence of a complete chart, a rather difficult task. Ga loa, or Black Duck Bay, derives its name from the largest of three islands situated in it. Ga loa island is two hundred feet high, about a mile long, and half a 142 A MISSION TO VITI. mile across, and full of fruit-trees. It was pointed out as the spot where, only a twelvemonth ago, a man was baked and eaten. Cannibalism in Fiji will soon num- ber amongst the things that have been. The influence of all the whites residing in or visiting the group is steadily directed towards its extinction, and though a person who ought to have had more charity has asserted in print that he had been told some of the white resi- dents were habitual partakers of human flesh, I think, for the honour of our race, such second-hand stories ought to be indignantly rejected. Antiquaries know that cannibalism of a certain form lingered in Europe long after the Reformation ; that mummies, said to be Egyptian, were extensively used medicinally, and that only after it was found out patients had not partaken of the contemporaries of Thothmes I. or Eameses the Great, but of bituminized portions of their own fellow- countrymen, this precious quack medicine fell into abso- lute disuse. Even in our own times we may still meet in certain parts of Europe people doing what has been recorded with horror of the Fijians — that of drinking the living blood of man ; but mark ! with this essential difference, that the former, watching their opportunities at public executions, do it in hopes of thereby curing fits of epilepsy, whilst the latter did it to gratify re- venge and exult over fallen enemies. As for a Euro- pean, even of the lowest grade, coolly sitting down to a regular cannibal feast, the idea is too preposterous to have ever been allowed to disgrace the pages of a mo- dern publication. Taudromu, another of the islands of Ga loa Bay, A FIJIAN EBL-KING. 143 scarcely half a mile round, now belongs to an American Indian of real flesh and blood ; and in former times was inhabited by Eatu-va-caki, a mighty spirit, who, with his £ons, all like their father, of prepossessing appear- ance, and bearing poetical names,* seem to have played the same part in Fiji as the Erl-King and his daughters did in Europe. Many are the stories told of their deeds and adventures. Generally they used to go out together, but if Eatu-va-caki was disinclined, the boys, who, young rascals! had as keen an appreciation of a pretty face and a good figure as their old rake of a father, would rove about by themselves, principally moving about in heavy squalls and gales; hence their invisible canoe was termed " Loaloa ;" and if, soon after stormy weather, any fine young girls suddenly died, it was proverbially said that Eatu-va-caki and his sons had carried off their souls. However, poetical justice was done at last. One day, when all were at Yanuca, near Bega, their presence, notwithstanding their having assumed human shape, was discovered by the local god, wrho rightly guessed their intentions. When they were performing a dance, and all the girls were admiringly watching their graceful movements, the local god caused his priest to prepare a certain mixture, which, on being sprinkled over the visitors, made their arms, legs, and other parts of their bodies assume such ridiculous shapes, that they became the laughing-stock of all, and could never think of again undertaking similar expeditions. *. The sons were called, Teketeke-ni-masi, because he, the eldest, wore a Breath of flowers over his white tapa, Tawake-i-tamana, Reaugaga, and the youngest Valu-qaiaki (or rising moon). 144 A MISSION TO VITI. The meeting with the chiefs and principal landholders of Kadavu was held at Tavuki, and passed off as satis- factorily as that at Ban and Rewra, the natives expressing their eagerness to become British subjects. We pur- chased from the natives a good many curiosities, such as clubs, fans, spears, etc., for our ethnological collections, some of which were remarkable specimens of carving, and evidently very old. The great size and heaviness of these things made them very inconvenient objects to carry and stow away on board, crammed as we were for space. One afternoon all the children of the town and neighbourhood, wishing to show their goodwill, came in full procession, and singing, up to the mission-house, each carrying a present. Some had bundles of sugar- cane, some bunches of taro, some struggled under the weight of an enormous yam. All the presents were piled in a heap at our feet, and it was intimated that they were meant for the special gratification of Mrs. Smythe. Then all the children sat down in rows on the ground, and sang a number of songs, accompanied by grotesque gestures, and movements of body and arms, but at the same time not without meaning. One of these songs, or " mekes," described the horror of the natives when seeing for the first time a horse and a man on its back, — how they fled in wild terror, and took refuge on high rocks and trees, so that the monster might not hurt them. Both ' Pegasus ' and ' Paul Jones ' left Tavuki Bay on the morning of the 17th of August, and after a few hours' sail arrived at Qalira, where we hoped to ascend Buke Levu, but the sea was so high that we found it A DISAPPOINTMENT. 145 impossible to land. We hoped for better luck at Nasau, which we reached late at night, and were in full hopes of gaining the top of the fine mountain, constantly ex- hibiting to us its dome-like summit. The next morning, however, was so very rainy, that we had to give up all hopes of accomplishing our object that day; and it was therefore resolved to postpone our ascent, and cross over to Viti Levu, in order to pay a visit to Kuruduadua, for the exploration of "whose dominions Mr. Pritchard and I had already paved the way. 146 CHAPTER IX. DEPASTURE FROM KADAVU. — ARRIVAL AT NAVUi. — A COURT OF JUSTICE. STARTING FOR THE INTERIOR. THE NAVUA RIVER. — ITS FINE SCE- NERY. RAPIDS. A CANOE UPSET. — TOWN OF NAGADI. — HOSPITABLE RECEPTION. — SOROMATO. KIDNAPPING. — FAMILY PRAYERS. — HEATHEN TEMPLE. — A LARGE SNAKE TO BE COOKED. — MARCH ACROSS THE COUN- TRY.— VUNIWAIVUTUKU. — A DIFFICULT ROAD. — A PURSE LOST. — NO THIEVES. — ARRIVAL AT NAMOSI. — DANFORD's ESTABLISHMENT. — HIS USEFULNESS AS A PIONEER. LEAVING Kadavu on Saturday the 18th of August, at noon, our schooner cast anchor off Navua early next morning, where we were hospitably received by Kuru- duadua, the chief of the district. Danford, the English- man, whose history has already been told, was also there to conduct us to his place of residence at Namosi, as had been previously arranged. We took up our quar- ters in the new Strangers' House (Buri ni so), where there was ample room to hang up mosquito curtains and open our luggage. There had been a quarrel be- tween an Englishman and a Tonguese, both residing at Taguru, in Kuruduadua's dominion. The Englishman had allowed his pigs to grub the fields belonging to the Tonguese, and the latter, after repeatedly remonstrating without effect, had thought it advisable to enlighten the Englishman by setting fire to his shed. Both parties appealed to the British Consul for justice, and, with A COURT OF JUSTICE. 147 Kuruduadua's approval, the case was gone into as it would before any magistrate in England, witnesses being called to establish the truth of the various statements advanced. The result was, that the Englishman was told that, according to Fijian customs, the pigs, not the fields, were fenced in, and that he had no right to allow his animals to destroy neighbours' property; whilst his neighbour, for taking the law in his own hand, was ordered to erect, in a specified number of days, a new shed, in every way equal to the one destroyed. Kuru- duadua wras highly pleased with the way in which the whole had been managed ; and though it was late when the case was decided, he sent for several of the leading men to give them an account of it, and they sat up the greater part of the night discussing the fairness of the proceedings. Having made arrangements with Kuruduadua for proceeding into the interior on our previous visit, we were able to start on the morning of the 21st of Au- gust. The travelling party consisted of Colonel Smythe, Mr. Pritchard, the Rev. J. Waterhouse, Danford, Chief Kuruduadua, and a host of followers, all embarked in canoes. The weather, which, during the previous week, had been rainy, became very fine at starting. The boat in wilich Mr. Pritchard, Danford, and myself W7ere seated, was always ahead, and all attempts made by the others to beat us proved failures. At one time we had a most exciting race, the rival canoes putting forth all their strength, but to no avail : we kept ahead in spite of all their efforts. Danford and the natives were quite in their element, L -2 148 A MISSION TO VITI. and indefatigable in offering explanation. I thought I could not do better than take advantage of their local knowledge and dot down all I heard, saw, and had pointed out. " Look to the right," cried one, " there is Tamana, with a large temple at the top." " Look to the left," interpolated another, " if you wish to see Solu, a small town, just disappearing betwen those banana plantations. You have already lost it. Those bamboos, high reeds, and tall treeferns, have shut it out. Do you see the wild plantain 1 There ! there it is ! You can always know it from others by its having erect orange- coloured branches instead of nodding ones, like the cul- tivated species. One more sago-palm in that swamp, probably the last, as we ascend the river ; it does not like rocks, and here, you see, they begin. This is the first rapid : no danger, all the canoes pass over safely. Three hawks chasing a pigeon ! Now for bold scenery ! The rocks are at least two hundred and fifty feet high, full of fine timber at the top. And those splendid waterfalls ! Here we are at Kuburinasaumuri ; cliffs on both sides, and the river full of fresh-water sharks, of which the chief killed a very large one for biting his brother. This is Na Savu drau — the hundred waterfalls. In the rainy season that number is quite correct ; even now, if you count all those little streaks of silver pour- ing over the cliffs, you will find it not far short. On the right is the Wai-ni-kavika (the river of the Malay apples), where a mighty spirit dwells." And thus they went on talking and pointing out all they considered interesting or worth looking at. We had gradually exchanged the low, flat land of the coast PASSING THE KAPIDS. 149 for bold river scenery, and poled and paddled against a strong current. Judging from the water-mark observ- able on rocks and trees, the Navua, which flows almost due south, must be navigable for large boats during the rainy season ; but when we ascended there was little wrater, and it required no ordinary skill to get the canoes over all the rapids that presented themselves. I have never appreciated the fun of passing over rapids, where a single false stroke or inattention of the steersman may upset you, and one may congratulate himself by simply escaping with bruises.* On one or two occa- sions we had to drag our little flotilla over them by means of ropes. At length we arrived at one worse than any we had previously encountered. We all landed, and told our crew to put our luggage on shore ; this order, however, was only partially obeyed. Colonel Smythe's people, wishing to save themselves the trouble, headed the rapid. In an instant the torrent, breaking * I well remember the anxious faces on board a steamer going over the rapids of La Chine, on the St. Lawrence ; the band playing all the time, " The Eapids are near, and the daylight is past." There were on board then nearly all the members that had assembled to attend the meeting of the American Association for the Advancement of Science, at Montreal, Canada, I, as official representative of the Linnean Society of London, amongst the number; and judging from the serious tone that pre- vailed, and the sudden silence when we drew near the rapids, I don't think there were many present who thanked the managing committee for having provided this passage for our special amusement. Everybody was glad when it was over, except perhaps those Canadians who, by fre- quent repetition, had become used to this sensation passage. The tem- porary gloom was, however, soon dispelled by an animated discussion as to whether the honour of taking the first steamer over La Chine — the Indians had always taken their canoes over — was due to an Englishman or Ame- rican. I did not wait for the end of the discussion ; but whatever country- man, he must have been a most daring and cool-headed fellow. 150 A MISSION TO VITI. the rope, had swept away the canoe, dashed it with great force against a steep rock on the opposite side, smashing the outrigger, swamping the little vessel, and leaving all the luggage and provisions swimming in the water. All the natives plunged in the river, and succeeded in saving the property. Of course the clothes were satu- rated, the tea had been made, the sugar was dissolved, and the biscuit looked like so much bread and butter pudding. To me, who often got a wetting in crossing rivers, it was quite amusing to see Colonel Smythe and Mr. Waterhouse busy in wringing and hanging up their clothes, and I could not resist the temptation of asking them whether any mangling was done there. Fortunately, the stores which Mr. Pritchard and I had brought were quite safe, and so we could supply most of their deficiencies. The mishap being repaired as much as possible, we pushed on, and soon arrived at Na Mato, — a place where the river was entirely blocked up by huge rocks, said to have fallen from the top of the mountain on the right-hand bank, during an earth- quake some forty years ago. The natives assured us that when this catastrophe first took place, the stoppage of the river was complete ; and the water rose so high that for a long time it inundated their fields, and they had to dive for their provisions. They did obtain cocoa- nuts, but could not get at the taro, and there was a famine in consequence. We left our large canoes at Na Mato, and in smaller ones, which Kuruduadua had in readiness, passed a steep rocky shore, where the people of Nagadi bury their dead. Excavations are made into the rock, and the NAGADI. 151 corpses laid on their back, with the head towards the west. A small species of bamboo, of which the natives make pan-flutes, was here most common, as indeed all along these rocky shores, and greatly added by its grace- ful feathery habit to the beauty of the scenery. Sunset was close at hand when we reached Nagadi, a town built on the top of a high steep hill, composed of rich clayey soil. For the night, we took up our quarters at the Bure ni sa, or strangers' house, invari- ably found at every Fijian town or village, and remind- ing one of the Tambo or Tambu of South America, between which and the strangers' house of Polynesia there appears to be a connection which ethnologists do not seem to have appreciated sufficiently. Both are public establishments, where travellers have the right to pass the night, and where they obtain meat and drink.* This Bure proved extremely dirty, and was much too small for all the people assembled to welcome our party. By spreading clean mats over a portion of the floor, and putting out most of the smoking fires kindled between each of the sleeping-places, we suc- ceeded in making ourselves comfortable. Pigs, yams, and taro, all baked on hot stones in true Polynesian style, as Captain Cook described it one hundred years ago, and a quantity of pudding, consisting of ripe ba- nanas boiled in cocoa-nut milk, and sweetened with * One of the meanings of the Polynesian word tabu, or, as the Fijians pronounce it, tambu, is " set apart," " reserved," etc. ; and I often won- dered— that is all I could do with my slight philological knowledge — whether the name of the houses " set apart " or " reserved " for travellers in the Andes, the Tambos or Tambus, was in any way connected with this word. 152 A MISSION TO VITI. rasped sugar-cane, were brought in and presented to Chief Kuruduadua, who, after accepting the gift through his speaking-man, again presented it to us. We had to go through the same ceremony of accepting the food, and had also the obligation to distribute it amongst the whole travelling party. This task was accomplished satisfactorily by Danford, whom his long life amongst the mountain tribes of Viti Levu has made familiar with all their complicated ceremonies. After supper the kava bowl was brought out. Whilst the beverage was preparing the whole assembly chanted songs ; and when ready, Danford gave the toast, and the cup-bearer handed the first cocoa-nut full to the chief. As soon as our bowl was empty, another and another was prepared, until the whole company had been served. Fortunately, kava, unlike distilled spirits, does not make people quarrelsome ; it has rather, like tobacco, a calm- ing effect; and when Fijians extol the virtues of their national beverage, they often, and justly, make this ob- servation. When leaving Navua we had more volunteers for accompanying us than there was any occasion to em- ploy, and we were compelled to reject the services of a good many. Amongst them was a young chief, named Soromato, or, as his companions nicknamed him, "Monte- monte." I told him that I did not wish to crowd our canoe, and he must stay behind ; but he declared that he had made up his mind not to leave me as long as I was in the island. 1 told him I would not have him on any account, and if he did not take himself on shore directly, I would pitch him in the river. He intimated SOROMATO. 153 that he could swim, and that his clothes would not spoil, as he wore none. It not being prudent to give in to the natives, I had no option but to carry out my threat, choosing the very moment our flotilla was under weigh. He thought it a good piece of fun, and declared he would be with me nevertheless. He was as good as his word. When we landed at Nagadi he was there al- ready, having come by the mountain road. I had now no alternative. He proved to me most useful and attentive, and never left me until I finally embarked, when he cried bitterly on being told that it was quite out of the question he could go to Europe with me, where he would probably have to exchange a life of ease and plenty for one of toil and poverty, and not be treated as a chief but as a common man. The tribes of which Kuruduadua was the head, had for some time been molested by their neighbours, and wre found at Nagadi a party of soldiers just returned from an unsuccessful ambush. They had endeavoured to kid- nap some of their enemies, and wrere rather disappointed at having to report ill success. I recognized several of them as having been at Navua during our first visit to that place, and they gave us some account of Kurudua- dua's son, whom Mr. Pritchard and I invested with his toga virilis. He was in the depths of the mountains, and a message had been sent to him that he might come to pay his respects to us. Before retiring to rest we had family prayers in En- glish, Mr. Waterhouse officiating. Kuruduadua com- manded silence, and it was very impressive, amongst a profound stillness, to hear a Christian minister offering 154 A MISSION TO VITI. up supplications to heaven for the conversion of the be- nighted beings crowding around us. They were all at- tention, and in their minds evidently compared the con- vulsive ravings of their own priests with the dignified bearing of the Christian missionary. The next morning I paid a visit to the heathen temple at Nagadi. Unlike other temples on the coast, which are generally erected on terraced mounds, and quite free from any enclosure, this was on level ground, and sur- rounded by a high bamboo fence ; some of the sticks used being the young shoots entire, with unexpanded leaves, and looking like so many fishing-rods. The temple itself was a mere hut, scarcely twenty-five feet long and fifteen wide. In one corner there was an enclo- sure of reeds, where the spirit was supposed to dwell or descend. Kava-roots and leaves, clubs, spears, and little twigs of Waltlieria Americana, suspended from various parts of the roof, had been presented as offerings. In some old temples the various offerings have been taste- fully arranged, making the interior of the building look like a great armoury. There were no images of any kind, — indeed, I never saw idols of any sort throughout Fiji. The priest and his family also lived in this place, and readily exhibited all the curiosities accumulated. Amongst the things attracting my attention was a lot of bamboo-canes tied in a bundle, which, on being struck on the ground with the opening downwards, produced a loud and hollow sound. Two single bamboos of unequal length are beaten contemporaneously with this large bundle in religious ceremonies. I gave the young priest a jew's- harp, with which he expressed himself highly pleased. LAEGE SNAKE. 155 At Nagadi the river branches off in two different direc- tions: the eastern branch is not navigable even for small canoes, but said to be about forty miles long; whilst the northern has deep water, of which we took advantage in resuming our journey the next morning. All our luggage was sent by land, on the backs of natives. The weather still continued fine, so that we fully enjoyed the beautiful scenery and rich vegetation around us. We passed Bega, where our river was joined by a small tributary stream ; hence the site of the town (or koro) is termed Uci wai rua, the junction of two rivers, the rivers being the Wai Koro Luva, and the Wai ni Avu. We finally abandoned our canoes at Wai nuta, to proceed on foot to Namosi — there being no horses, mules, or any other mode of conveyance. On stepping on shore I was shown the largest snake I ever saw in Fiji. It was only six feet long, two inches in diameter, of a light brown colour, and with a trian- gularly-shaped head. I was very desirous of obtaining it for my zoological collection ; but the natives said that Kuruduadua had just seen it and ordered them to pre- pare it for his supper on his return from Namosi. As he had passed on, I could not get the order revoked ; and the reptile having been put alive in a bamboo, which was corked up at the ends, the boys, much to my regret, trotted off with it. Climbing at once commenced. The paths being very narrow we walked in single file, Kuruduadua taking the lead, and showing us the sites of the various towns which he or his fathers had taken when their victorious army gradually fought its way from the interior of Viti Levu 156 A MISSION TO VITI. to its southern coast. The soil appeared everywhere of the richest kind. We saw no plains of any size, but series after series of undulating ranges of no very great height, well suited for growing coffee, tea, and cotton. Now and then there was a fine bird's-eye view of the country, which Kuruduadua was always careful to point out, evidently enjoying our expressions of delight on these occasions. I saw a good many plants that inter- ested me, and their collection ultimately isolated me and Soromato, henceforth my shadow, from the rest of the party. I had just been speculating on the cause of the Fi- jian, in common with other insular floras, being poor in gay-coloured, and rich in green, white, and yellow flowers, when, lo ! a look in the valley revealed bushes covered with a perfect mantle of scarlet and blue, thrown up to great advantage by the bright rays of the sun. I saw my travelling companions had made a halt near the very spot where nature had condescended to refute a deeply-rooted generalization. I clambered down the hill as fast as the condition of the ground would admit, and for awhile lost sight of the gay dis- play by intervening objects. A few more steps and I stood before a startling sight — Colonel Smythe's artil- lery uniform hung up to dry in the sun ! In detailing the violent emotions I had passed through, my companions enjoyed a good laugh at my expense, and invited me to cool myself by sitting down to a cup of hot tea, pork, and yams, all spread out picnic fashion on the grass, and in the shade of some fine cocoa-nut palms. The village where I met with this mortification NO THIEVING. 157 rejoiced in the name of Vuniwaivutuku, and consisted of about thirty houses, some of which were neatly fenced in with Dracaenas. The place where we had squatted down was in front of the Buri ni sa, an old and not very large building, surrounded by a good many erect stones, indicating the number of dead bodies eaten under its hospitable roof. The grass-plot in front, and several fine leaf plants, gave an air of neatness to the whole ; whilst the extensive view it commanded over the whole valley, proved the situation a well-chosen one for a strangers' house. Kuruduadua informed us that there were two roads from here to Namosi, and that he should take us the longest, and bring us back the shortest, so that we might see as much as possible of his territory. He told us the road would be rather a rough one, and, without any exaggeration, it proved quite equal to the worst roads I traversed in South America. Now we had to climb perpendicular rocks, now creep underneath low bowers formed by reeds, now again wrade through rivers and rivulets, or pass over swampy ground. Our clothes were torn by brambles, our hands and faces cut by sharp-edged leaves of grasses ; indeed, one was forcibly reminded of the flight of the mechanics through the forests, which Puck relates with roguish delight in the ' Midsummer Night's Dream : ' " For briers and thorns at their apparel snatch ; Some sleeves ; some hats ; from yielders all things catch." On proceeding, Colonel Smythe discovered that he had left his purse at Nagadi, having placed it last night under his mat, and forgotten to put it in his pocket be- fore starting. " Make yourself perfectly easy about it," 158 A MISSION TO VITI. said Kuruduadua, when this loss was communicated to him, " I allow no thieving here ; I club all thieves : they don't do that at Rewa or Bau. A man shall go back for it at once, and in a short time the purse will be brought." A messenger was sent accordingly, and, sure enough, when it was brought not a coin was missing. Covered with mud and very tired, we reached towards sunset the town of Namosi, where Danford many years ago took up his residence. The beauty of its situa- tion had not been exaggerated, and the accompanying sketch, for which I am indebted to Dr. Macdonald, will give some conception of it. It is built in a lovely valley, very much reminding me of Ischl. High mountains are rising on every side of an extremely fruitful valley, through which the Wai dina is winding its serpentine course, and passing many miles of fertile country, ulti- mately discharges its waters into the sea at Rewa. The temperature being considerably lower than that of the coast, a European is filled with a thrill of delight as he begins to breathe the air so much resembling that to which his constitution is best accustomed ; and it requires no prophetic soul to predict that if ever the Fijis be- come a European colony, Namosi will be a favourite resort during the hot season, and the surrounding hills a mass of coffee and tea plantations. We went straight to Danford' s house, one of the largest in the town, built close to the rocky banks of the river, and surrounded by a neat bamboo fence, enclosing fine cocoa-nut, bread-fruit, orange, and Tahi- tian chestnut-trees, which diffused an agreeable shade over the extensive courtyard, whilst gay-coloured dra- DANFOKD. 159 caenas and croton shrubs gave quite a finish to the place. Danford evidently enjoyed our surprise at find- ing everything so clean and comfortable, and new mats and even calico curtains. It was the best kept native- built house I had visited in Fiji. Afterwards, when having seen more of us, he told us how much annoyed he had been by certain remarks the whites on the coast had made to his disadvantage. Those people, who should be nameless, had insulted him by asking him point-blank how cannibal food tasted, and how he could think of forsaking the Christian religion and assisting in heathen rites. He had nothing to oppose of these accusations but silent contempt, and his well-fingered Bible was a good proof of his real disposition. In his own way he had evidently done a great deal of good ; was the direct means of abolishing many abominable practices; and without this pioneer we should never have been able to reach this little-known region of the world. He was very fond of reading, and had accumu- lated a good many books, mostly presents from consuls, missionaries, or captains and officers of ships. I in- creased it by a copy of Shakspeare, after which he had a hankering. The natives often came to look at his picture books, and the ' Illustrated London News ' was a source of endless delight to them. 160 CHAPTER X. POPULAR IDEAS RESPECTING THE INTERIOR OF VITI LEVU. — MALACHITE AND ANTIMONY. — ASCENT OF VOMA PEAK. — VISIT TO A HEATHEN TEMPLE. — "SPIRIT FOWLS." — OFFICIAL MEETING WITH KURUDUADUA AND HIS SUBJECTS. — A REBELLION TO BE SUPPRESSED. — PRESENTATION OF FOOD. " THE OLDEST INHABITANTS." A COURT-FOOL AND HIS TRICKS. — MR. WATERHOUSE PREACHING. — DEPARTURE OF COLONEL SMYTHE, AND MESSRS. PRITCHARD AND WATERHOUSE, FOR NAGROGA. To the north of Namosi there is a good deal of unex- plored country, and we tried hard to get some informa- tion about its general features. A popular belief, cur- rent amongst the white settlers in Fiji, affirms that there is a large table-land and an inland lake in Viti Levu. Nothing could be learnt of this table-land, but the na- tives had heard of a lake on which canoes were. Not far from Namosi, still in sight of the town, exists a mountain, which the late Mr. Williams, American Con- sul for Fiji, bought for its rich veins of copper ore. After Mr. Williams's death a number of specimens from this mountain were found in his possession, of which his executor gave me several. They proved to be ma- lachite, closely resembling the Australasian, and next to that of the Ural, considered the best. Nothing has as yet been done to work these mines. The natives also informed us of the existence of ore cf antimony about MALACHITE AND ANTIMONY. 161 ten miles from Namosi, and at a place called TJmbi, where it is said to occur in large veins in the side of a hill. Macdonald and S. Waterhouse also heard of and saw quantities brought down by the natives in bamboos, and concluded that it must be plentiful. The black sand so frequently found on the banks of the Eewa river, and attracted by a magnet, has also been washed down from these mountains. Danford at one time fancied he had discovered gold in the neighbourhood, and in 1856 he took the c Herald's ' officers to the Wai ni Ura. The rocks were spangled with iron pyrites, which made their appearance wherever the surface was broken : gold was nowhere to be seen. Directly on our arrival we made preparations for as- cending Voma, the highest peak in Viti Levu, perhaps in the whole Fijis, and never trodden by the foot of white man. The natives represented to us the impos- sibility of getting to the summit, but we told them that we must at least make the attempt. To this proposal they agreed, and on the morning of the 24th of August we commenced our task, guided by Natove, a famous warrior and petty chief, who proved an excellent hand in cutting openings through the forest when we got higher up. On leaving Namosi our path led through numerous taro, banana, and yam plantations, and close to an altar made of sticks and native cloth, on which food for the spirits of the dead was placed : some of the yams were actually sprouting again. The mass of Fijians will have it that these offerings are consumed by the spirits of their departed friends and relations, supposed to have M 162 A MISSION TO VITI. great supernatural influence ; but if not eaten by ani- mals, the food is often stolen by the more enlightened class of their own countrymen, and even some foreigners occasionally do not disdain to help themselves freely. The ascent of Voma was steep, and made us very warm indeed. Our native attendants found it equally so, though not encumbered with any clothing like our- selves ; and to cool themselves they thought it no addi- tional exertion to climb up a tree and catch the breeze. In former times, there had been a town some consider- able distance up the mountain, traces of which were still visible ; and hence, though there was a thick wood, the actual virgin forest did not commence until we had attained the height of about 2500 feet above the sea. When entering that region we found the trees altogether different from those of the lowlands, and densely covered with mosses, lichens, and deep orange-coloured orchids (DendroUum Mohlianum, Echb. fil.). Some of the ferns were of antediluvian dimensions. A species of Cinna- momum, producing a superior kind of cassia-bark, and used by the natives for scenting cocoa-nut oil, and as a powerful sudorific, was met with in considerable quan- tities. The absence of all large animals, and the limited number of birds, impart an air of solemnity to these upland forests. Not a sound is heard : all is silence • — repose ! We had to pass over some awkward places, and to climb several almost perpendicular rocks, rendered slip- pery by water trickling down. However, at half-past ten, two hours and a half after starting, Colonel Smythe, Mr. Pritchard and myself, reached the summit : Danford ASCENT OF VOMA PEAK. 163 having stopped half-way, and Mr. Waterhouse remained behind at Namosi to scatter a little seed of truth amongst the numerous heathens pouring into the town for to- morrow's grand meeting.* Immediately trees were cut down, and compass bear- ings taken of all prominent parts, by which means an important step was made to reform the geography of Viti Levu.f A great part of Fiji lay like a map at our feet ; there were the islands of Moturiki, Batiki, Gau, Bega, Ovalau, and a host of smaller ones ; even Kadavu was looming at the distance. We had hoped to have a * " Before a large company of chiefs and people." says Mr. Water- house, in his published journal of this tour, " I gave an account of the Great Creator, and of the original state and subsequent fall of man. They loudly applauded Adam's cleverness in blaming the woman, and Eve's in accusing the serpent. I was afterwards requested to tell them about Noah and the Flood, with which demand I complied. Before I left the house, the chief said to those present, ' These missionaries are oul true friends : they want us to live in peace and quietness, and to cultivate the soil ; but you slaves can't understand these matters.' Many referred in glowing terms to the visit of my brother Samuel, and Kuruduadua gave a vivid description of his visit to the house of the Rev. William Moore." t Dr. Macdonald and Mr. Samuel Waterhouse were, it is well known, the first who penetrated up the Wai dina, or great river of Viti Levu, to Namosi, and from data which they furnished was constructed the map published in the Journal of the Eoyal Geographical Society, vol. xxvii. Having nothing to go upon but the compass and dead reckoning, the posi- tion of Namosi, as well as the source of the Wai dina, has been placed too far west, as our route to Namosi lay almost due north. The compass bearings taken on the top of Voma Peak would have corrected errors found in recent maps ; but the southern coast seems to be so far out that they cannot be made available at present. I subjoin them : — East end of Moturiki, N.E. by E. ; centre of Batiki, N.E. by E. f E. ; west end of Gau, E. by N. i N. ; centre of Nukulau Island (Eewa), E. f S. ; east end of Bega, S. ; centre of Yanuca, S. by W. i W. ; Gamo Peak, S. by W. £ W. ; extreme sea horizon to the west, S.W. by W. ; town of Namosi, N. N.W. ; extreme sea horizon on the north was the west end of Ovalau. M 2* 1G4 A MISSION TO VITI. glimpse of Bega; but that we should be able to see nearly two-thirds of the whole group was a pleasure for which we were unprepared, and which amply repaid the exer- tion made in the ascent. A fire was kindled to let the people of Namosi know of our success, and after collect- ing specimens of the vegetation, and partaking of some refreshment, we descended, and reached Namosi about five P.M., the boys carrying baskets full of rare and new plants. In the evening we paid a visit to a Bure Kalou (heathen temple). Though not surrounded by a fence, it was situated and similar to that at Nagadi, small and insig- nificant in comparison with some of the temples near the coast. Danford introduced us to the priest, who kept up a roaring fire, which made the inside too hot for us to stay longer than a few minutes. We were told that the Kalou (= Spirit, God), for whom two-thirds of the whole building were set apart by a screen of bamboo, liked heat ; but I presume the only spirit fond of a good fire was the priest himself, as he was rather an old man. Hearing from Danford that one of our party, disliking pork, had not eaten meat for several days, he very good-naturedly let us have several fowls presented to the temple. Danford dubbed them spirit-fowls, and Mr. Pritchard turned them into excellent curry, for which the materials were fetched fresh from the bush. When retiring to the house, Danford occupied the greater part of the evening by telling us one of the best Fijian stories, one of the chiefs helping him out when memory failed. It was that of the Princess Vili- OFFICIAL MEETING AT NAMOSI. 165 vilitabua and the Vasu-ki-lagi. One of our party took down the outline of it, but unfortunately lost it, and I shall not spoil a good story by giving it imperfectly. Chief Kuruduadua had proposed to have the official meeting at Namosi, in preference to Navua, his usual place of residence on the coast, and summoned all his tribes, their petty chiefs and landholders for the 25th of August. On our arrival, Namosi was already crowded with visitors, and parties of men, women, and children, generally bringing loads of provisions and property with them, continued to flock in from all directions during the whole of the following day. The meeting took place in the open air, and in the public square or Kara, which is situate on the banks of the river, and before the great Bure ni sa, or strangers' house, a building about ninety feet long, and built on a mound. The weather was beautiful, and the birds were singing sweetly in the numerous shaddock-trees lining the banks. When we arrived, the people, with the exception of the women, were squatted on the ground at a respectful distance from the seats placed for our accommodation. None of the influence which civilization and missionary teaching have had on the Fijians were here perceptible. Every native appeared in primitive style, and a stranger sight it has never been my fortune to witness. Every man seemed to have used his utmost efforts to make himself look as singular as he possibly could. Their dresses were merely narrow strips of bark cloth. Some faces were quite black, some only half; again, others half black and half red, or striped in various ways. Nothing could be more curious than the endless variety 166 A MISSION TO VITI. displayed in the shape and colour of the wigs, and doing- up of the head ; a European peruquier might have taken a lesson with advantage. Chief Kuruduadua had taken his seat on the steps leading to the principal entrance of the great Bure. He wore a turban of snow-white tapa, and a purple girdle of the same material, from which were suspended two trains of native cloth, several yards long. On his left were his brothers and councillors, amongst whom was seen his friend Danford. When wre had taken our seats, the people welcomed us by clap- ping of hands, whereupon mutual explanations were at once entered into. Through Mr. Waterhouse, Colonel Smythe addressed to the chief a speech similar to that delivered at Bau and other places, the purport of which has already been given. Mr. Waterhouse spoke in the Bauan (court) dialect, and Kuruduadua replied in the same, that he and his people had made up their minds to " lean upon England," as he expressed it, in the manner agreed upon with Mr. Consul Pritchard. Colonel Smythe approved of their determination as judicious, there being no country more able to protect them than mighty England. He also recommended the cultivation of cotton. On being questioned about the ownership of land, Kuruduadua replied that he considered himself the sole proprietor of all the land, the boundaries and principal tribes of which were specified; that his late brother had sold some land to Mr. Williams, deceased, and he himself some to several Englishmen, all these transactions being acknowledged as valid. An expression of mutual goodwill concluded the MEASURES FOR REPRESSING A REBELLION. 167 business. During the whole time the people behaved with great dignity ; none spoke except those who car- ried on the discussion. When their foreign affairs were satisfactorily concluded, the chief, quitting his seat, begged us to remain, in order to see how they managed their internal politics. This invitation we gladly ac- cepted by taking up our position near the entrance of the Bure, where we had a better view of the whole assembly. It appears that one of the numerous tribes subject to Kuruduadua had rebelled against his authority, and it had been determined by the councillors that stringent measures should be put in force against it. The princi- pal and most renowned speaker of the Government, a man about fifty, now came, staff in hand, out of the great Bure into which Kuruduadua had retired, and explained to the people at large the policy about to be pursued. He moved freely about the circle formed by his audience, and his speech was listened to with profound attention, eliciting now and then exclamations equivalent to "hear, hear ! " The drift of his argument was that the rebels must be put down and peace restored, in order that they might have plenty when the white men came to their country, from whom Fiji already derived such benefits. When he had finished, other speakers got up, all in favour of the government measure, and much applauded by the multitude. One old chief was much cheered on saying, " I am no speaker, but know how to fight ; and there (pointing with his hand) is the road to the enemy's stronghold." All business matters having been disposed of, it only 168 A MISSION TO VITI. remained to enact the closing scene by a great banquet. The women now appeared on the stage. All the young girls had collected in a group, some two hundred yards off, in a grove of palm-trees, each carrying a basket-full of taro. According to their fashion, they wore nothing save a girdle of hibiscus-fibres, about six inches wide, dyed black, red, yellow, white, or brown, and put on in such a coquettish way, that one thought it must come off every moment. The girls (a hundred and fifty- four) walked in single file, and all those wearing girdles of the same colour kept together. When arriving in front of the Bure, young men received the baskets and emptied their contents in a heap, leaves having been spread out to keep them from coming in contact with the ground. We counted as many as two thousand taros, after which the baskets came in so fast that we lost count. The girls, after performing their part, walked away in the same order as they came. Several young men now brought seven large hogs, roasted entire, which were placed on the top of the taro heap. The whole pile of food was then presented to the visitors. The largest pig, and I am almost afraid to say how many hundred taros — ready to be eaten — fell to our share. It took twenty men to take our share home, for the food was not supposed to be consumed on the spot, everybody being at liberty to do what he liked with his lot, and I saw but very few not taking their por- tion away with them. There was a man present at this meeting, Eo Tui Kuku, who had seen five generations of the reigning chiefs family, and could not have been less than a THE OLDEST INHABITANTS. 169 hundred and twenty years old ; and there was another man, sharing the same house with him, who had seen four generations of the same family : excellent proofs of the fine physical constitution of the natives, and the healthiness of these mountains. Ho Tui Kuku was quite childish, and when we spoke to him and pre- sented him with a little American tobacco, he said that he must be off home. He had great-great-grand-chil- dren living, the eldest of whom was about ten years old. Another personage attracted our attention. He was the court fool of the occasion, and had dressed himself in a very fantastic manner. The fools attached to the courts of South Sea chiefs are very often hunchbacks, the natives being fully sensible of the great fund of humour which that class of people generally possess, as a set-off, it would almost appear, for the physical deformity which so often exposes them to unmerited ridi- cule, and which is now considered in Europe an essential condition of the most comic figure the popular mind has conceived. But the Namosi fool was an exception to this rule. He was in every respect a fine fellow, more than six feet high. On his head he wore a contrivance made of sticks and feathers resembling the shovel- bonnets ladies used to wear some years ago, and his face and body were painted in a very ludicrous manner. He talked in a feigned voice, imitating a woman, and probably gave utterance to many witticisms and good jokes, as he kept his countrymen in roars of laughter whenever he opened his mouth. When the meeting broke up, we had to recross the river in order to get to Danford's house ; a strong Tonguese belonging to the 170 A MISSION TO VITI. mission performed, St. Christopher-like, the office of car- rying our party across. Not being in a particular hurry to get over, I was waiting until all had crossed, when this fool came up to me with an oifer to take me to the op- posite bank. I thought he might be up to some tricks, and was rather on my guard. He landed me safely, but I soon found that I had been sold nevertheless, — my white dress looking as if printed on. The colours he had on his back had come off, and made me look almost as comic as the fool himself. The natives thought it an excellent joke, and when they saw me laughing as much as they did, their merriment knew no bounds. On the following day (Sunday, August 26th) Mr. Waterhouse, making the most of his opportunity, once more addressed the people ;* in the afternoon, he, Co- lonel Smythe, and Consul Pritchard left Namosi for Navua, whilst I thought it best to remain behind in order to explore the neighbourhood, and get a more inti- mate acquaintance with these singular people. Kuru- duadua again led the way, and this time took his visitors the shorter of the two roads leading to Vuniwaivutuka. They shot down the river rapidly, and on Monday, about four P.M., reached the ' Pegasus,' and put at once to sea. On the 30th of August they found themselves at Nadroga. * " On Sunday I preached on ' God now commandeth all men every- where to repent,' to a congregation of about three hundred male adults, all heathens, who listened very attentively and respectfully. Now and then one or another would say aloud, ' Very good ; ' or, ' It's true.' When I had concluded, I requested the audience to maintain perfect quiet- ness for a few moments whilst I engaged in prayer to the true and only God. They granted the favour, and not an individual made the slightest disturbance. As I was leaving, one of the chiefs thanked me publicly for my instruction." — Waterhouse, in Wesley an Missionary Notices. TROUBLES AT NADROGA. 171 As the difference between the heathen and Christian population, mentioned in a previous chapter, had not yet been satisfactorily settled, they found the country in rather a disturbed condition. The conflict between bar- barism and an incipient civilization was still going on. " The people were glad to see a missionary," says Mr. Waterhouse. " I was sorry to find that some of our native agents had not maintained neutrality between the Christians and heathens, which, they were obliged to confess, was not only against orders, but had proved to be, so far as they were personally concerned, bad po- licy. Since my visit in 1851 the bones of those human beings who had been eaten had been collected toge- ther and buried. The evening was spent in examining and instructing the schoolmasters and Scripture-readers. Mr. Moore has done a noble work in preparing so many agents for these benighted parts. " Though in some danger, yet I felt it my duty to sleep on shore to encourage my native colleagues to abide by their post of honour. Only last Tuesday a man was killed by a ' kidnapper.' There is no safety in going outside of the house after dark. In some cases the kidnappers enter the house, close or surround the doors, dispatch the inmates, and make their escape. In the event of an occurrence of this sort, I suggested that, instead of allowing the intruders to kill us, we should close in on them and bind them. " Colonel Smythe sent a native messenger to request the heathen Chief to pay him a friendly visit. The man performed his errand, and delivered his message. The enemy then clubbed him, and sent him back with 172 A MISSION TO VITI. the remark, that if two had been sent, one would have been killed and eaten, and the other allowed to return and report the fate of his comrade. Under these cir- cumstances they only half-Mlled him, and sent the other half of the poor man to tell a very sad tale and show his wounds. A present seemed to go far towards heal- ing the sores inflicted by a pine-apple club." Mr. Pritchard did not think it advisable to go further than Nadroga, whilst Colonel Smythe proceeded to Vuda, Ba, Vatia, Na Vatu, and thence to Naduri on Vanua Levu, and returned to Levuka on the 22nd of Septem- ber. Everywhere the chiefs acquiesced in the cession of their country to England. It will be remembered that I was still at Namosi; and I must beg the reader to return with me to that place. 173 CHAPTER XI. FIJIAN CANNIBALISM. — THE GEEAT CAULDEON. — NATTLUMATUA AND HIS APPETITE FOE HUMAN FLESH. — BOKOLA. — VEGETABLES EATEN WITH CANNIBAL FOOD. — THE OMINOUS TAEO. APPEOXIMATE NUMBEE OF BODIES EATEN AT NAMOSI. — OVENS FOE BAKING DEAD MEN. — SUSPEN- SION OF THE BONES. — NOT ALL FIJIANS CANNIBALS. — EFFOETS OF THE LIBEEAL PAETY TO SUPPEESS ANTHEOPOPHAGISM. — AIDED BY EUBO- PEANS. — EEAL SIGNIFICANCE OF EATING MAN ONLY PAETLY UNDEB- STOOD. — CONCESSIONS TO HUMANITY. — ABOLITION OF CANNIBALISM THEOUGHOUT ZUEUDUADUA's DOMINIONS. WHEN, in August, 1856, Dr. Macdonald, of H.M.S. He- rald, then under the command of Captain Denham, and the Rev. Samuel Waterhouse, a brother of the gentle- man who accompanied us, paid a visit to Kuruduadua's dominions, cannibalism was still one of the recognized institutions of the state. " A few days ago," says Dr. Macdonald, " a large canoe from Navua went out on its first voyage, when a fleet of the enemy from Serua at- tacked it, and succeeded in killing one man, who fell overboard. The Serua people now dispersed, and the canoe, on returning, landed a detachment with directions to surprise the enemy on coming ashore. They fell in with a party of seven, four of whom were killed, two fled, and one was taken prisoner. The latter was almost im- mediately boiled alive in a large cauldron. Kuruduadua, the perpetrator of this cruelty, addressed him, in short 174 A MISSION TO VITI. terms, to the effect that, as he had so wickedly cut to pieces a living man of his (Kuruduadua's) people, he should be served as the case deserved. The unfortu- nate man was then thrust headforemost into the boil- ing pot. The greater part of the slain was eaten at Navua, but parcels of the revolting food were distri- buted amongst the chiefs dominions in the mountains. On the morning of the 30th of August, after a little parley with the chief, Naulumatua, the knee of a dead body, already cooked, was brought to our bure. The bones had been removed by an incision made on one side, and the whole was carefully wrapped up in banana leaves, so as to be warmed up each day in order to pre- serve it. Of six parcels of human flesh which we knew had been sent to Namosi, this was all we had an oppor- tunity of seeing. One leg was said to have been de- posited at the grove of Viriulu, the deceased king and father of Kuruduadua.* Mr. Waterhouse spoke to the chief very impressively on the subject, pointing out all the evils which follow in the wake of cannibalism. I saw very distinctly that this savage was quite ashamed of himself; but I saw also that, if he did feel inclined for the tempting morsel, there was now very little chance of seeing him in the act: but for my own part, I am quite satisfied, and do not now desire further ocular demonstration of the existence of cannibalism in Fiji. We have now every reason to believe that the portion of the last bokola (dead body), which Naulumatua as- serted had been placed upon the rock where the remains * We are told this king's name was " Batuibuna," but perhaps he went by two names. — B. S. NAULUMATUA. 175 of the last chief were laid> was eaten on the sly by this cannibal, whose morbid taste for human flesh was ac- knowledged by all the people in the town. . . . Tobi, one of our party, happened to stumble into the chiefs house, and he distinctly saw a human hand hanging in the smoke over the fireplace. Now, although the dis- tribution of all the other parts had been accurately de- tailed to us, no mention was made of this, so that the dissimulation of Naulumatua was clear enough. Most probably, had we approached the spot, the inviting morsel would have been quickly conveyed out of the way. Mr. Waterhouse was informed that the chief continued to eat his portion at intervals throughout the day, until it was all demolished ; but an old favourite of the town helps him out with it." Thus far Mac- donald. Naulumatua was the half-brother of Kuruduadua, and only died a short time previous to our visit, and the court was still in mourning for him, which was the reason of our not having either dance or song. His head- wife took me to his grave, and lamenting his death, said that he might still be alive if he had only abstained from eating human flesh, and that both she and Danford had done all in their power to convince him that he was ruining his constitution systemati- cally by that indulgence. For it appears that human flesh is extremely difficult to digest, and that even the strongest and most healthy men suffer from confined bowels for two or three days after a cannibal feast. Probably, in order to assist the process of digestion, " bokola," as dead men's flesh is technically termed, is 176 A MISSION TO V1TI. always eaten with an addition of vegetables, which it may be ethnologically important to notice ; since, thanks to a powerful movement amongst the natives, the in- fluence of commerce, Christian teaching, and the pre- sence of a British Consul, Fijian cannibalism survives only in a few localities, and is daily becoming more and more a matter of history. There are principally three kinds which, in Fijian es- timation, ought to accompany bokola, — the leaves of the Malawaci (Trophis anthropophagorum, Seem.), the Tudauo (Omalantlms pedicellatus, Bth.), and the Boro- dina (Solanum anthropophagorum, Seem.). The two former are middle-sized trees, growing wild in many parts of the group ; but the Boro-dina is cultivated, and there are generally several large bushes of it near every Bure-ni-sa (or strangers' house), where the bodies of those slain in battle are always taken. The Boro dina is a bushy shrub, seldom higher than six feet, with a dark, glossy foliage, and berries of the shape, size, and colour of tomatoes. This fruit has a faint aromatic smell, and is occasionally prepared like tomato sauce. The leaves of these three plants are wrapped around the bokola, as those of the taro are around pork, and baked with it on heated stones. Salt is not forgotten. Besides these three plants, some kinds of yams and taro are deemed fit accompaniments of a dish of bokola. The yams are hung up in the Bure-ni-sa for a certain time, having previously been covered with turmeric, to preserve them, it would seem, from rapid decay: our own sailors effecting the same end by whitewashing the yams when taking them on board. A peculiar kind of A WHOLE TRIBE EATEN. 177 taro (Caladium esculentum, Schott, var.), called " Ku- rilagi" was pointed out as having been eaten with a whole tribe of people. The story sounds strange, but as a number of natives were present when it was told, several of whom corroborated the various statements, or corrected the proper names that occurred, its truth appears unimpeachable. In the interior of Viti Levu, about three miles N.N.E. from Namosi, there dwelt a tribe, known by the name of Kai-na-loca, who in days of yore gave great offence to the ruling chief of the Na- mosi district, and, as a punishment of their misdeeds, the whole tribe was condemned to die. Every year the inmates of one house were baked and eaten, fire was set to the empty dwelling, and its foundation planted with Jcurilagi. In the following year, as soon as this taro was ripe, it became the signal for the destruction of the next house and its inhabitants, and the planting of a fresh field of taro. Thus, house after house, family after family, disappeared, until Ratuibuna, the father of the present chief Kuruduadua, pardoned the remaining few, and allowed them to die a natural death. In 1860, only one old woman, living at Cagina, was the sole survivor of the Na-loca people. Picture the feelings of these unfortunate wretches, as they watched the growth of the ominous taro ! Throughout the dominions of the power- ful chief whose authority they had insulted, their lives were forfeited, and to escape into territories where they were strangers would, in those days, only have been to hasten the awful doom awaiting them in their own country. Nothing remained save to watch, watch, watch, the rapid development of the kurilagi. As leaf N 178 A MISSION TO VITI. after leaf unfolded, the tubers increased in size and sub- stance, how their hearts must have trembled, their cou- rage forsaken them ! And when at last the foliage began to turn yellow, and the taro was ripe, what agonies they must have undergone ! what torture could have equalled theirs ? How many dead bodies have been eaten at Namosi, it is impossible to guess ; but as for every corpse brought into the town a stone was placed near one of the bures, you get some faint idea of the number. I counted no less than four hundred around the Great Bure alone, and the natives said a lot of these stones — of which the larger ones indicated chiefs — had been washed away, when, some time ago, the river overflowed its banks. On some of the T&vola(Terminalia) trees standing about the Great Bure, I noticed certain incisions, and as Mac- donald, on ascending the Rewa river, had noticed similar ones at the town at Naitasiri, and was told that they were " a register of the number of dead bodies (bokolas) brought to the spot to be offered up at the bure before they were cooked and eaten," I inquired repeatedly after their meaning, and was assured by various persons that, at Namosi at least, they were entirely the work of children. As the bark of the Tavola-trees is as smooth as our beech, I carved my name on the largest of them ; a much condemned habit of our race, but which, in re- mote corners of the earth, I have not always been able to resist. There are ovens in the public square for baking dead bodies, and the pots in which human flesh is boiled or NOT ALL FIJIANS CANNIBALS. 179 jsteamed are not devoted to any other culinary purpose. Another curious circumstance is, that whilst the natives eat every other kind of food with their fingers, human flesh is eaten with forks, having three or four prongs, and generally made of the hard wood of a species of Casua- rina. Every one of these forks is known by its par- ticular, often obscene, name, and they are handed down as heirlooms from generation to generation ; indeed they are so much valued, that it required no slight persuasion and a handsome equivalent to obtain specimens of them for our ethnological collection. It is customary to suspend some of the bones of those human beings that have been eaten in the trees before the Bure-ni-sa ; and we saw several of these trophies, on some of which was growing a beautiful little fern (Hemi- onitis lanceolata^ Hook.), not previously seen, and only gathered afterwards on the very summit of Buke Levu.* It would be a mistake to suppose that all Fijians, not converted to Christianity, are cannibals. There were whole towns, as for instance Nakelo, on the Rewa river, which made a bold stand against this practice, declaring that it was tabu, forbidden to them by their gods, to indulge in it. The common people through- out the group, as well as women of all classes, were by custom debarred from it. Cannibalism was thus re- stricted to the chiefs and gentry, and again amongst them there is a number, who for want of a better appella- tion may be called the Liberal party, and who never * Mr. Waterhouse speaks of " grinning skulls looking down on us ;" but I never saw any skulls at this place, though carefully examining all the trees, nor do I know for certain whether that part of the body is ever suspended in trees. N 2 180 A MISSION TO VITI. eat human flesh, nor go near the bures when any dead bodies have been brought in, and who abominate the practice as much as any white man does, attributing to it those fearful skin diseases with which their children are so often visited. But their opponents, the Conser- vatives, maintain that in order to strike terror in the enemy and lower classes, it is absolutely necessary for great chiefs and gentry — a duty they owe to society— to eat human flesh. The feeling which the common people have regarding it seems somewhat akin to the horror inspired by that part of our nursery tales when the giants come home, and begin to smell the children concealed. The same enlightened party also objects to the killing of women, urging that it is just as cowardly to kill a woman as a baby. But here again those who advocate inhumanity are triumphant, arguing that if the women are killed the men will fret, and thus suffer an almost direct punishment ; and further, that as whenever there is a quarrel a woman is sure to be at the bottom of it, justice demands that her sex, having caused the bloodshed, should not escape scot-free. It is owing to this powerful ferment, which had pe- netrated the whole Fijian community, that cannibalism was so speedily abolished in all districts where Chris- tian missionaries or European consuls were able to aid the good cause by supplying the combatants with fresh arguments, and backing them up with all the advan- tages derived from their position as respected foreigners. There may have been, and I dare say there are to this day, individual natives, who, like Naulumatua, have a morbid appetite for human flesh, sufficient opportunity to SIGNIFICANCE OF ANTHROPOPHAGISM. 181 gratify it to an alarming extent, and who could no more break themselves of the habit, though death stared them in the face, than any confirmed drunkard can of his vice. But as a general rule boJcola was not regarded in the shape of food; and when some of the chiefs told fo- reigners, who again and again would attack them about a custom intimately connected with the whole fabric of their society, and not to be abolished by a single reso- lution, that they indulged in eating it because their coun- try furnished nothing but pork, being destitute of beef and all other kinds of meat, they simply wished to offer some excuse which might satisfy their inquisitors for the moment, Fijians always regarded eating a man as the very acme of revenge, and to this day the greatest insult one can offer is to say to a person, " I will eat you." In any trans- action where the national honour had to be avenged, it was incumbent upon the king and principal chiefs — in fact, a duty they owed to their exalted station — to avenge the insult offered to the country by eating the perpetrators of it. I am convinced however that there was a religious as well as a political aspect of this custom, which awaits future investigation. Count Stre- letzki, whose powers of observation have given him an insight into savage life few travellers have attained in so eminent a degree, fully agreed with me when some time ago this subject was the topic of conversation be- tween us. There is a certain degree of religious awe associated with cannibalism where a national institution, a mysterious hallow akin to a sacrifice to a supreme being, with which only the select few, the tabu class, 182 A MISSION TO VITI. the priests, chiefs, and higher orders, were deemed fit to be connected. The cannibal forks obtained at Namosi tended to confirm this belief. There was the greatest reluctance to part with them, even for a handsome equi- valent, and when parted with displaying them was ob- jected to. This I thought at first very natural, as they were said to be heirlooms, and the owners did not like to expose themselves to the odium of having trafficked in things like them. But when afterwards they were shown to parties who could know nothing of the trans- actions, their faces always assumed a serious aspect, and they were most anxious that I should put the forks out of sight, especially that of children. My handling them seemed to give as much pain as if I had gone into a Christian church and used the chalice for drinking water. When visiting Navua for the first time in June, Mr. Pritchard and I did not fail, as soon as we had suc- ceeded in gaining Kuruduadua's confidence, to interpose the influence acquired in favour of humanity. The chief being a pagan, it was useless to employ any Bibli- cal arguments, and we had therefore simply reason to fall back upon. One of the first concessions he con- ceded was, that as has already been detailed, no one should be clubbed on his son coming to manhood — a whole town having originally been singled out for that horrible purpose. It took him several days to consider our proposition with his leading men ; and there were long and warm discussions as to the propriety of yield- ing to our request. We were kept well informed of the progress of the question through Danford, who, to his "THE LARGE CAULDRON." 183 praise be it said, did all he could to bring about an issue favourable to humanity. At last Kuruduadua in- formed us, that having duly considered our request with his councillors, they had agreed to allow the Consul and myself to put on the scanty clothing, the assump- tion of which marked the transition from boyhood to manhood. We lost no time to break through a custom which will now never be repeated in the district, since the son of a governing chief dispensed with it. The "large cauldron" which Macdonald mentions,'* but did not see himself, stood close to the door of the chiefs house. Our attention was drawn to it by our interpreter, Mr. Charles Wise ; and the very thought was agonizing to be so near the awful vessel in which perhaps many a human being had been boiled. It was one of those large iron pots used by traders for curing beche-de-mer, or sea-slugs, so plentiful on the reefs of Fiji, and a valuable article in the Chinese markets. It was large enough for cooking two men entire. At the mere sight of it my imagination ran riot, and a scene presented itself similar to that in the last act of Halevy's ' Jewess/ where the boiling cauldron is ready to receive the victim of Christian intolerance. The nineteenth century must be freed from so shocking a spectacle, and Mr. Pritchard and myself let Kuruduadua have no peace until he agreed to abolish and prohibit cannibalism throughout his dominions. A few months earlier he would have met with a most determined opposition in promulgating such a law, for his half-brother at Namosi, * Journal of the Royal Geographical Society of London, vol. xxvii. p. 253. 184 A MISSION TO VITI. then alive, would never have agreed to it ; but our visit happened just at the right time in order to crown our endeavours with success. When in August we saw the cauldron again, it was quite rusty, and had evidently not been used. Weeds were growing around it, and a creeper was trying to cover by its foliage this remnant of past errors and crimes. Kuruduadua had evidently kept the promise made us, caused presents of human flesh sent to him to be buried, and given strict orders that even in the fight impending the bodies of the slain enemies should be left to be buried by their friends, and on no consi- deration be removed by his own people. Batinisavu, who succeeded the cannibal Naulumatua as governor of Namosi, belonged to the party always op- posed to anthropophagism. He was quite a young man ; had, according to all accounts, never tasted human flesh ; and there is every reason to believe, great friends as he was with Danford, that as long as he holds the post no boJcola will be seen at Namosi. The widows of the late governor paid me repeated visits, and said there would be no more cannibalism at Namosi, since Kuruduadua's orders were very strict. Soromato, the young chief who had attached himself to me, asked Danford one day whether he remembered a conversation they had years ago, when he was a very young boy, and in which he told him of a vow he had made never to kill a woman when able to wield a club, or eat human flesh, when old enough to do so. Danford said he well remembered it, as it struck him as very singular that a mere child should feel so strongly on these subjects as to make a solemn SOROMATO'S VOW. 185 vow. " Well," Soromato replied, " I still adhere to that determination, and shall do so as long as I live.'1 I quote this as a specimen of the way in which a certain party of heathen, untaught Fijians, endeavour to bring about the same reform in their customs, which, from different points of view, and with different means, their best friends have for years laboured to effect. 186 CHAPTER XII. STAY AT NAMOSI PROLONGED. THE GOVERNOR'S ATTENTION. — " CROWN JEWELS." — THE CLERK OF THE WEATHER. — SORCERERS. — FIJIAN FAMILY LIFE. — STORY-TELLERS POPULAR. A FIJIAN TALE. THE people were highly pleased when they heard of my resolution to stay some time longer with them, and treated me with great cordiality. Batinisavu,* one of the younger brothers of Kuruduadua, who is the gover- nor of Namosi, was never tired of showing me atten- tion, and shooting ducks and fowls for me, or making different kinds of puddings, on the excellence of which he prided himself. Chiefs always make it a point to excel in everything they undertake ; and this is no doubt one of the reasons why they maintain their ascen- dency over the people. They build canoes, houses, or temples, in a style and with a finish to which the lower order cannot come up; in agriculture they take the lead ; in fighting, rowing, pulling, racing, and all manly exercises, they are patterns for imitation ; in the history, legendary lore, and traditions of the country, they carry off the palm ; they know every rock, river, plant, and animal, by its local name, and can give some account of everything connected with them. If to all this be added * Batinisavu, — literally, the edge of a waterfall. 187 that their physical development is much superior to that of the lower classes, that they are not only taller and better made, but generally possessed of much handsomer features, we need not wonder that some travellers have thought them a different race from the rest of their countrymen ; and that in their own land they have been able to resist all democratic levelling, and remain to this day as genuine an aristocracy as ever existed, because in every respect a superior class. The widow of the late governor of Namosi asked me to see the " crown jewels '' in her charge. They were kept in a wooden box, and carefully wrapt up in soft pieces of native cloth and cocoa-nut fibre. There were among them a large whale's tooth, highly polished, and quite brown from repeated greasing, a necklace made of pieces of whales' teeth, the first that ever came to these mountains, and a fine cannibal fork in the shape of a club, and bearing the ominous name of "strike twice," i.e. first the man and then his dead body. The woman told me a lot of other crown property had been burnt when, some years ago, the Americans destroyed Navua ; among it, she assured me, was a short club which would kill a man on the spot, and was never known to miss when thrown by the hand of the supreme chief. Whales' teeth are with the Fijians what diamonds are with us, and in former days there wTas no favour a chief would refuse if a number of these were offered. The European and American traders soon found this out, and did not fail to bring quantities whenever they touched at these islands. The consequence has been that on the coast and amongst the christianized popu- 188 A MISSION TO VITI. lation whales' teeth have suffered considerable deprecia- tion, though they have not as yet entirely been reduced to their proper value. In the interior of the great island they maintain their old importance, and Kuru- duadua, on seeing us handling some money, expressed his astonishment that we should prefer coins to whale's teeth. We told him not many years would elapse be- fore he changed that opinion, but he thought that time would probably never come. During my stay, one of the days was rainy, prevent- ing me from making an excursion. On expressing my re- gret to that effect, a man was brought to me who may be called the " clerk of the weather." He professed to exercise a direct meteorological influence, and said that by burning certain leaves and offering prayers only known to himself, he could make the sun shine or rain come down, and that he was willing to exercise his in- fluence on my behalf if paid handsomely. I told him that I had no objection to give him a butcher's knife if he could let me have fine weather until my return to the coast, but if he failed to do so he must give me something. He was perfectly willing to risk the chance of getting the knife, but would not hear of a present to me in case of failure ; however, he left to catch eels for me. When returning, the clouds had dispersed and the sun was shining brilliantly, and he did not fail to inform me that " he had been and done it." I must further do him the justice to say that I did not experi- ence any bad weather until I fairly reached the coast, and that no sooner had I set my foot in Navua than rain came down in regular torrents. This man has A CLEKK OF THE WEATHER. 189 probably been a close observer of the weather, and dis- covered those delicate local indications of a coming change, with which people in all countries living much in the open air are familiar, and he very likely does not commence operations until he is pretty sure of success. As one of my objects in Fiji was to find out "all about the leaves," I was anxious to be initiated in an art productive of such astonishing results. A little in- quiry, however, convinced me that an initiation would make me rather an object of fear than respect. The adepts in the art of Vaka-drau-ni-kau-taka (literally, to effect with leaves) are in fact regular sorcerers, whose craft I thought it prudent not to join. Not satisfied with causing rain and sunshine, they exercise a direct and much more criminal influence over life and death, by working upon the superstitious fears of the natives to such an excess that it causes serious illness, if not death. They are identical with the disease-makers of Tanna, though not enjoying such a prominent position, and accomplish what European impostors effected, and in some districts still effect, by praying to death people silly enough to make themselves nervous about any influence these rogues pretend to exercise. If a Fijian wishes to cause the destruction of an individual by other means than open violence or secret poison, the case is put in the hands of one of these sorcerers, care being taken to let this fact be generally and widely known. The sorcerer now proceeds to obtain any arti- cle that has once been in the possession of the person to be operated upon. These articles are then burnt with certain leaves, and if the reputation of the sorcerer 190 A MISSION TO VITI. be sufficiently powerful, in nine cases out of ten the nervous fears of the individual to be punished will bring on disease, if not death ; a similar process is ap- plied to discover thieves. In order to comprehend the working of this abominable system, and the mischief and extortion to which it gives rise, one must take into consideration the absolute helplessness of the Fijian, in fact the Polynesian generally, when anybody has ac- quired a moral ascendency over him. A certain white settler being very much annoyed by a native, told him in as powerful language as he could muster, that he wished him dead, and that he had no doubt he would die within a twelvemonth. The native professed to treat this prophecy with derision ; nevertheless on calling about a year afterwards, the foreigner was informed that the native had fretted so much that he died. The words spoken in anger had thus had a fatal result, and the white man in confiding them to me seemed truly sorry for what he had done. The inhabitants of Namosi on being asked for their name, will never give it when anybody else is present to answer the question. I inquired for the reason, but they could give no other explanation except that it was their custom. It probably offends their dignity. They feel in this respect more acutely than ourselves, who deem it polite always to apologize when having to ask a person's name, and generally endeavour to find it out in a less direct way. The family life of the Fijian, especially in places like Namosi, where not modified by Christian teaching, is very curious. The men sleep, as has already been ob- FAMILY LIFE. 191 served, at the Bure-ni-sa, or strangers' house, those of about the same age generally keeping together, whilst the boys, until they have been admitted publicly into the society of adults, have a sleeping bure to themselves. It is quite against Fijian ideas of delicacy, that a man ever remains under the same roof with his wife or wives at night. In the morning he goes home, and if not em- ployed in the field, remains with his family the better part of the day, absenting himself as evening approaches. Eendezvous between husband and wife, of which no further explanation can be given, are arranged in the depths of the forest, unknown to any but the two. After childbirth, husband and wife keep apart for three, even four years, so that no other baby may interfere with the time considered necessary for suckling children, in order to make them healthy and strong. This in a great mea- sure explains the existence of polygamy, and the diffi- culties the missionaries had to contend with in fighting against its abolition. The relatives of a woman take it as a public insult if any child should be born before the customary three or four years have elapsed, and they consider themselves in duty bound to avenge it in an equally public manner. I heard of a white man, who being asked how many brothers and sisters he had, frankly replied, uTen !" " But that could not be," was the rejoinder of the natives ; " one mother could scarcely have so many children." When told that these chil- dren were born at annual intervals, and that such occur- rences were common in Europe, they were very much shocked, and thought it explained sufficiently why so many white people were " mere shrimps." Adultery is 192 A MISSION TO VITI. one of the crimes generally punished with death ; and Kuruduadua himself had not long ago one of his ne- phews clubbed for taking undue liberties with one of his wives. What is called amongst us the " social evil," and thought to be an unnatural excrescence of our artificial state of society, is not unknown amongst these barbarous races. There being no streets, nymphs of a certain description waylay travellers on the high roads — a direct refutation of the Mormon argument, that " polygamy is the only cure for this corruption of our great cities." Fijians have been charged with want of natural affec- tion ; and the strangulation of widows on the death of their husbands, and the killing of parents when beset with the infirmities of old-age by the hands of their own children, have been advanced as proofs thereof. Yet these facts are perhaps the best arguments that human nature is not different in the Fijis than else- where. Affection for the departed — of course, mis- taken affection — prompted their relatives or friends to dispatch widows at the time of their husbands' burial ; and the widows themselves have been known to seek death by their own hands, if their relatives refused to fulfil that duty which custom imposed upon them. Even widowers, in the depth of their grief, have fre- quently terminated their existence, when deprived of a dearly beloved wife. On the death of a near relative people will cut off joints of their fingers in order to demonstrate their grief, and they will mourn for a long time for their lost ones. The sentiment of friendship is strongly developed, and there is scarcely a man who has NATIVES NOT WITHOUT NATURAL AFFECTION. 193 not a bosom friend, to whom he is bound by the strongest ties of affection. The birth of a child is a perfect jubilee, and it is truly touching to see how parents are attached to their children, and children to their parents. Under such circumstances, the greatness of the sacrifice that children are sometimes called upon by their infirm old parents to terminate their suffer- ings by putting them to death, becomes evident. It is a cruel slander of the native character to put any other construction on this singular, though mistaken proof of filial affection. In a country where food is abundant, clothing scarcely required, and property as a general rule in the possession of the whole family rather than that of its head, children need not wait " for dead men's shoes," in order to become well off, and wre may, there- fore, quite believe them when declaring that it is with aching heart and at the repeated entreaties of their pa- rents that they are induced to commit what we justly consider a crime. The two old men present at our meeting at Namosi, were living proofs that children however, even in these wild parts, will not always be induced to lay hands on their parents. I told a native who sometimes called at Danford's house, and seemed to be a most respectable man, a belief had been spread in our country that the Fijians were almost without natural affection. He replied, there might be some amongst his countrymen, as well as the whites, who had not much feeling ; but those who de- nied the Fijians natural affection, either understood them very little, or else represented them in such black co- lours for some purposes of their own. " When leaving o 194 A MISSION TO VITI. home," he continued, "all my thoughts are with my family, and I am never so happy as when I am under my own roof, and have my wife and children around me. When a few days ago my youngest boy was ill, I sat up with him three nights, and it would have broken my heart had he died." The man was a savage, a heathen, yet could any Christian parent have spoken more warmly or naturally I Fortunately, affection is wisely placed by Providence beyond the reach or influence of any system, right or wrong. Like a beautiful flower, it springs up freely in any soil congenial to its growth. If the Fi- jians were only half as black as they have been painted, they would long ere this have been numbered amongst the extinct races ; for no society, however primitive, can possibly continue to exist, if the evil passions — the de- structive elements — preponderate over the good. The best vindication of their national character is their na- tional existence ; the best proof of their living a life as free from vice and corrupting practices as any heathen can be expected to live, is a physical development on an average far above that of which our own race, with all its advantages of civilization, can ever hope to boast. In the evenings, Batinisavu or other men would come and entertain me with some of those innumerable stories, in which the natives may be said to photograph themselves, show in what direction their fancy wanders, and which no travellers, worthy of the name, should omit writing down. The supernatural element plays a prominent part in all Fijian stories, and whilst possessing a decidedly local colouring, they forcibly re- mind one of our own nursery tales. The natives are BATINISAVU'S STORY. 195 very fond of them, and a good story-teller can never starve. Danford informed me that the " Arabian Nights" have been a source of income to him. " Aladdin, or the Wonderful Lamp," is paid for at the rate of two fat pigs, equivalent to about eight dollars ; and the " Forty Thieves " meets with a similar success whenever that charming tale is told, several friends clubbing together in order to make up a purse for the story-tellers. What a source of pleasure one would open to these islanders, by translating for them the "Arabian Nights" or Grimm's " Household Stories." Chief Batinisavu was always careful to inform me that he did not tell stories for pay, and in printing one of those he told me I must do him also the justice to add that it was a very long one. Taking up several hours in telling, I can merely give the pith of the whole, and have to leave out those details which, without ample explanation and local knowledge, would be quite unin- telligible and uninteresting to the generality of readers. THE STOEY OF ROKOUA, AS TOLD BY BATINISAVU, GOVEENOE or NAMOSI. " Once upon a time there dwelt at Eewa a powerful god, whose name wras Ravovonicakaugawa,* and along with him his friend the God of the Winds, from Wairua.t Ravovonicakaugawa was leading a solitary life, and had * Ravovonicakaugawa, i. e. a long way off. f This god was and is supposed to reside at a little brook in the lovely valley of Namosi, on Viti Levu, pointed out to us when we visited the in- terior of the island in September, 1860. When the Eewa people come to the Namosi valley, they never fail to make sacrificial offerings at Wairua (which is both the name of the locality and its god). Even some of those that have become Christians continue this practice. O 2 196 A MISSION TO VITI. long been thinking of taking a wife to himself. At last his mind seemed to he made up. ' Put mast and sail in the canoe/ he said, ' and let us take some women from Rokoua, the God of Naicobocobo.'* ' When do you think of starting V inquired his friend. 'I shall go in broad daylight,' was the reply, ' or do you think 1 am a coward to choose the night for my work!' All things being ready, the two friends set sail, and anchored to- wards sunset off Naicobocobo. There they waited one, two, three days, without, contrary to Fijian customs, any friendly communication from the shore reaching them, for Rokoua, probably guessing their intentions, had strictly forbidden his people to take any food to the canoe. Rokoua's repugnance, however, was not shared by his household. His daughter, the lovely Naiogabui,f who diffused so sweet and powerful a perfume that, if the wind blew from the east, the perfume could be per- ceived in the west, and if it blew from the west, it could be perceived in the east — in consequence of which, and on account of her great personal beauty, all the young men fell in love with her. Naiogabui ordered one of her female slaves to cook a yam, and take it to the fo- reign canoe, and at the same time inform its owner that she would be with him at the first opportunity. To give a further proof of her affection, she ordered all the wo- men in Naicobocobo to have a day's fishing. This order having been promptly executed, and the fish cooked, Naiogabui herself swam off with it during the night, and presented it to the Rewa God. * Naicobocobo, on the western extremity of Vanua Levu, the supposed starting-point of departed spirits for Bulu, the future place of abode, f Naiogabui, i. e. one who smells sweetly. ROKOUA'S WIVES. 107 " Eavovonicakaugawa was charmed with the princess, and ready to start with her at once. She, however, begged him to wait another night, to enable Naimila- mila, one of Eokoua's young wives, to accompany them. Naimilamila was a native of Naicobocobo, and against her will united to Eokoua, who had no affection what- ever for her, and kept her exclusively to scratch his head or play with his locks, hence her name. Dissatisfied with her sad lot, she had concocted with her step-daugh- ter a plan for escape, and was making active prepara- tions to carry it into execution. On the night agreed upon, Naimilamila was true to her engagement. ' Who are you V asked the god as she stepped on the deck. 'I am Eokoua's wife,' she rejoined, 'get your canoe under weigh. My lord may follow closely on my heels, and Naiogabui will be with us immediately.' Almost directly after a splash in the water was heard. ' There she comes,' cried Naimilamila, ' make sail ;' and instantly the canoe, with Eavovonicakaugawa, his friend, and the two women, departed for Eewa. " Next morning, when Eokoua discovered the elope- ment, he determined to pursue the fugitives, and for that purpose embarked in the ' Yatutulali,' a canoe de- riving its name from his large drum, the sound of which was so powerful that it could be heard all over Fiji. His club and spear were put on board, both of which wrere of such gigantic dimensions and weight, that it took ten men to lift either of them. Eokoua soon reached Nukuilailai, where he took the spear out, and making a kind of bridge of it, walked over it on shore. Taking spear and club in his hand, he musingly walked 198 A MISSION TO VITI. along. ' It will never do to be at once discovered/ he said to himself ; ( I must disguise myself. But what shape shall I assume 1 That of a hog or a dog I As a hog, I should not be allowed to come near the door ; and, as a dog, I should have to fetch the bones thrown outside. Neither will answer my purpose. I shall therefore assume the shape of a woman.' Continuing his walk along the beach, he met an old woman, carrying a basket of taro and puddings, ready cooked, and, with- out letting her be at all aware of it, he exchanged figures with her. He then inquired whither she was going, and, being informed to the house of the God of Rewa, he took the basket from her, and, leaving club and spear on the beach, proceeded to his destination. His disguise was so complete, that even his own daughter did not re- cognise him. 4 Who is that V she asked, as he was about to enter. ' It is I,' replied Rokoua, in a feigned voice ; 4 1 have come from Monisa with food.' ' Come in, old lady,' said Naiogabui, 4 and sit down.' Rokoua accord- ingly entered, and took care to sit like a Fijian woman would do, so that his disguise might not be discovered. ' Are you going back to-night V he was asked. ' No,' the disguised god replied ; ' there is no occasion for that.' Finding it very close in the house, Rokoua proposed a walk and a bath, to which both Naiogabui and Naimila- mila agreed. When getting the women to that spot of the beach where club and spear had been left, he threw off his disguise, and exclaimed, 4 You little knew who I was ; I am Rokoua, your lord and master,' and, at the same time taking hold of their hands, he dragged the runaways to the canoe, and departed homewards. HELP FROM THE GODS. 199 " When the Rewa god found his women gone, he again started for Naicobocobo, where, as he wore no dis- guise, he was instantly recognized, his canoe taken and dragged on shore by Rokoua's men, while he himself and his faithful friend, who again accompanied him, were seized and made pig-drivers. They were kept in this degrading position a long time, until a great festival took place in Vanua Levu, which Eokoua and his party attended. Arrived at the destination, the Rewa god and his friend were left in charge of the two canoes that had carried the party thither, whilst all the others went on shore to enjoy themselves ; but as both friends were liked by all the women, they were kept amply supplied with food and other good things during the festival. Nevertheless Ravovonicakaugawa was very much cast down, and taking a kava-root (Yaqona), he offered it as a sacrifice, and despairingly exclaimed, c Have none of the mighty gods of Rewa pity on my misfortune V His friend's body became instantly possessed by a god, and began to tremble violently. ' What do you want V asked the god within. ' A gale to frighten my oppressors out of their wits.' ' It shall be granted,' replied the god, and departed. "The festival being over, Rokoua's party embarked for Naicobocobo. But it had hardly set sail when a strong northerly gale sprang up, which nearly destroyed the canoes, and terribly frightened those on board. Still they reached Naicobocobo, where the Rewa god prayed for an easterly wind to carry him home. All Rokoua's men having landed, and left the women behind to carry the luggage and goods on shore, the desired wind 200 A MISSION TO VITI. sprang up, and the two canoes, with sails set, started for Rewa, where they safely arived, and the goods and other property were landed and distributed as presents among the people. " But Rokoua was not to be beaten thus. Although his two canoes had been taken, there was still the one captured from Ravovonicakaugawa on his second visit to Naicobocobo. That was launched without delay, and the fugitives pursued. Arriving at Nukuilailai, Rokoua laid his spear on the deck of the canoe and walked over it on shore, as he had done on a previous occasion. Landed, he dropped his heavy club, thereby causing so loud a noise that it woke all the people on Viti Levu. This noise did not escape the quick ear of Naimilamila. ' Be on your guard/ she said to her new lord, ' Rokoua is coming ; I heard his club fall ; he can assume any shape he pleases ; be a dog, or a pig, or a woman ; he can command even solid rocks to split open and admit him, so be on your guard.' Rokoua meanwhile met a young girl from Nadoi on the road, carrying shrimps, landcrabs, and taro to the house of the god of Rewa, and without hesitation he asumed her shape, and she took his without being herself aware of it. Arriving with his basket at his destination, Naiogabui asked, 'Who is there V To which Rokoua replied, ' It is me ; I am from Nadoi, bringing food for your husband.' The supposed mes- senger was asked into the house, and sitting down, he imprudently assumed a position not proper to Fijian women. This, and the shape of his limbs, was noticed by Naiogabui, who whispered the discovery made into her husband's ear. Ravovonicakaugawa stole out of the ROKOUA'S END. 201 house, assembled his people, recalled to their minds the indignities heaped upon him by Rokoua, and having worked them up to a high pitch of excitement, he in- formed them that the offender was now in their power. All rushed to arms, and entering the house they de- manded the young girl from Nadoi. ' There she sits,' replied Naiogabui, pointing to her father ; and no sooner had the words been spoken, than a heavy blow with a club felled Rokoua to the ground. A general onset fol- lowed, in which the head of the victim was beaten to atoms. This was the end of Rokoua." 202 CHAPTER XIII. DEPARTURE FROM NAMOSI. — VUNIWAIVUTUKA. — THE " VELI." — MODE OF TATOOING THE MOUTH. — PASSING DOWN THE NAVUA RIVER. — NAGADI CLEARED OUT BY ITS VASU. — OUR CANOE CAPSIZED. — RETURN TO THE ' PAUL JONES.' — KURUDUADUA'S CHARACTER. — LEAVING NAVUA. — BEGA. — MR. STORCK'S ILLNESS. — RETURN TO KADAVU. — ASCENT OF BUKE LEVU. — REWA. — IMMIGRANTS FROM NEW ZEALAND. — MR. MOOliE's POWERFUL SERMON. — ARRIVAL AT LADO. — OFFICE DRUDGERY. WHEN, on the 2nd of September, I left Namosi, there were great lamentations. The women and children cried bitterly, and Batinisavu, the Governor of the place, with several young chiefs, made up their minds to see me safe to the coast. I had witnessed a similar scene after the departure of Colonel Smythe and Mr. Pritchard, and heard chiefs and people regret that they were gone, and would probably never come again. I had been amongst them much longer, and they had got used, and, in some instances, quite attached to me. Can- nibals though they be, they have many good qualities ; and some of the greatest crimes laid to their door may be explained, as singular, though mistaken demonstra- tions of a deep natural aifection. We took the same road as that by which Mr. Prit- chard and his party had returned, and in the afternoon reached Vuniwaivutuka, where we made preparations ADULTERY PUNISHED. 203 for staying the night. Directly on our arrival, some of the leading men came up to the Bure-ni-sa we were stopping at, to present a root of kava to Batinisavu, as a token of respect and goodwill, and making, in present- ing it, a neat little speech, to which the Namosi Gover- nor replied in equally friendly terms. Batinisavu struck me as a man very far above the rest of his countrymen. There was something quiet and dignified about him; and though he always went without any hesitation through all the ceremonies his station imposed, he often apologized to me by saying it was " Vaka Viti " — Fijian usage — which he could not set aside. The bures are, in Fiji, what club-houses are with us : everybody goes there, and all the news finds its way thither. The great topic of that day's conversation was the discovery of an adultery in a neighbouring village. The friends of the woman took up the case. The bure to which the adulterer belonged resisted their attack, and the consequence was a series of broken heads. The chief offender escaped, but his father was caught and punished for his son's transgressions. The husband of the seduced wife had his taro-fields destroyed, and was told that such a fool as he did not deserve to possess them. Batinisavu strongly censured the whole proceed- ings. He asked, where was their justice ] to punish the poor old father for his son's wickedness, wras simply cruel, and to destroy the crops of an already injured man, worthy of such mountaineers and fools as they were. No one can be long in this region of " taboo " and " tatoo " without perceiving what rich stores of human fancy and ideas, shortly to be lost or mutilated for ever, 204 A MISSION TO VITI. are here offered. Attention is constantly directed to them, and you have as little chance of remaining ignorant of the great deeds of Degei, Rokoua. and the Vasu-ki-lagi, as you have in the East of the stories of successful magicians, spell-bound princesses, and mighty treasures concealed in obscure caverns. In Kurudua- dua's dominion I could hardly turn without hearing of the doings of the Veli, and the greater part of the even- ing at this place was again devoted to them. My curi- osity had already been so much excited that I deter- mined, come what might, to write their natural history in the very localities most frequented by them. By inquiry and frequent cross-examination, I found the Veli to be a class of spirits in figure approaching to the German gnome, in habits of life the fairy of England. They have been in the country from time immemorial, and live in hollow Kowrie-pines and Kabea-trees. They are of diminutive size, and rather disproportionately large about the upper part of their body. Their hair is thick, and prolonged behind in a pig-tail. Some have wings, others have not. Their complexion rather re- sembles that of the white race than the Fijian. They have great and petty chiefs ; are polygamists, and bear names like the Fijians. They also resemble the latter in wearing native cloth or tapa, which however is much finer and whiter than the ordinary sort. They are friendly disposed, and possess no other bad quality than that of stealing iron tools from the natives. They sing sweetly, and occasionally gratify the Fijians by giving them a song. They feed on the fruit of the Tankua (Ptychosperma) and Boia (Scitaminearum gen. nov.), THE VELI AND THEIR DOINGS. 205 which they term emphatically their cocoa-nut and their plantain ; and men imprudent enough to cut down these plants, have received a sound beating from the enraged Veli. They drink kava made, not of the cultivated Macropiper methysticum, but of a pepper growing wild in the woods, and vernacularly termed Yaqoyaqona (Macropiper pubendum, Benth.). The Fijians have no long stories about them, as they have about their gods. All the accounts of the Veli relate to isolated facts,— to their abode, their having been seen, heard to sing, caught in a theft, and found to beat the destroyers of their peculiar trees ; but they are so numerous that it is no wonder the Fijians should consider the evidence suffi- cient to establish their real existence. The women about this place, as well as about Nagadi, were tatooed around the whole mouth, not merely around the corners, as is customary on the coast. The reader may smile at this observation, but after living awhile amongst natives in an almost absolute state of nudity, the eye readily detects these minute differ- ences, and the mind begins to comprehend why, on pay- ing compliments, these people dwell with such em- phasis on this or that part of the body, when a Euro- pean, under similar circumstances, would record his ad- miration for a becoming toilet, whole or in part. In narrating travels in barbarous countries, the disadvan- tage of the people not wearing clothes is acutely felt. In order to convey, at least, some notion of what the personages encountered were like, one is compelled to notice their arms, legs, and other parts of their body, a fact for which one is not always inclined. 206 A MISSION TO VITI. The next morning we left Vuniwaivutuka ; and after a smart walk of about an hour and a half, we came to a branch of the Navua river, where Batinisavu had a raft of bamboos prepared. It seemed a very rickety contri- vance ; nevertheless it was strong, and there was no chance of capsizing in passing over rapids. But I found it impossible to keep my collections dry, so four of the boys took them on their backs to Navua. We then passed down the river rapidly, and about noon reached the town of Nagadi, where we had stopped a night on a previous occasion. There we intended to exchange our raft for a large canoe, but this intention was frustrated. On that very day the " Vasu " to Nagadi had taken away all the canoes, and other articles of the town that took his fancy. A " Vasu " is a mighty personage in Fiji. He is simply a nephew, but, according to the usage of the country, he holds all the movable property of his uncle at his absolute disposal, and can at any moment take whatever he chooses. There are vasus not only to families, but to towns and states, and it is considered shabby to resist their exactions. Some vasus have even sold the land belonging to their uncles, but Fijians say that is going a little too far, and exceeds the proper limits of the system. If therefore the uncles wish to keep anything to themselves, they must not let their nephews see it. I remember Batinisavu, having a grasping nephew, and several American hatchets given him, begged Danford to keep them at his house, so that the vasu might not get wind of their existence. Of course the Vasus are expected to make some return, and the Vasu to the town of Nagadi, living on the sea-coast, OUR CANOE CAPSIZED. 207 where salt is abundant, had presented the people, whom he had cleared out of almost everything, with a supply of that useful article, for they assured us they had no canoes left to get across the river, and should have to commence that very day to build new ones. On push- ing down the river, we overtook the flotilla, heavily laden with goods of all descriptions, and had no diffi- culty in getting the loan of a canoe to Navua. We had little reason to congratulate ourselves on this change. At the next rapid we could not bale faster than the water came in at the stern ; the outrigger lost its balance, and in another moment the canoe was capsized.* Soro- mato, my faithful friend, by a desperate dash saved a bundle of my clothes, including cloak, and succeeded in getting them on shore dry. Having been up to my neck in water, I felt very thankful to Soromato. The natives kindled a fire on a gravelly spot, and two of the boys had to chew kava, which, in the absence of a proper bowl and straining fibres, was made in large leaves and squeezed through ferns. The canoe being baled out, and put again in proper order, we continued our voyage, and without any further mishap reached Navua. Kuruduadua met us close to the town ; he had been all day busy in the field, and said he had a great number of people staying with him to assist in his agricultural labours. When we stepped on shore, supper was just being presented to them. It was an immense heap of provisions, and though there were probably two hundred visitors, there must have been ample for all. * In our Plate representing Koro Basabasaga will be seen a good speci- men of a Fijian river-canoe with its outrigger. 208 A MISSION TO VITI. As the houses were crowded, I was very glad to learn that the ' Paul Jones,' with Mr. Pritchard on board, had arrived from Nadroga, and was then anchored at the mouth of the river. Two of the crew soon after made their appearance in the dingy belonging to the schooner, and I availed myself of the chance to get on board. On paddling down the river we encountered several heavy showers ; the clerk of the weather at Namosi had only guaranteed sunshine until I should have fairly reached the coast, and now I was again in the region of salt water, mangrove-trees, and sago swamps. We took shelter under a thick tree, and with my umbrella-parasol I kept myself tolerably dry. The people living on the high banks under which we had halted, soon espied us, and invited us to come into their houses. When we refused on account of its get- ting too late to reach the schooner, they brought some hot yams and taro, and one of the boys was sent up a cocoa-nut palm, slippery though the trunk was, to knock down some nuts for drinking. We gave them some sticks of tobacco, of which they were very glad, and all parted with mutual expressions of goodwill. I took leave of Batinisavu, the Namosi Governor, at Navua, and shall always remember his kindness. Ku- ruduadua came on board that night, and Danford ac- companied him. Though he had publicly declared in favour of the cession of Fiji to England, he had not as yet formally signed the deed of cession. As he is one of the most powerful chiefs, it was important to have his signature, and in the evening he affixed his mark to that document; Mr. Charles Wise having once more KURUDUADUA'S CHARACTER, 209 carefully translated the import of the paper, and I at- testing the chiefs signature. Whilst sitting in the little cahin of the schooner, Kuruduadua asked about a variety of subjects, and ge- nerally exclaimed, "Ah! ye white men are superior people. We are ignorant savages !" He was much pleased with that volume of Wilkes's ' Narrative of the United States Exploring Expedition ' relating to Fiji and Tonga. Indeed, all the natives who saw it were en- raptured with that beautiful publication. So faithful are the representations of places and persons, that the natives instantly recognized them. The portraits of Tanoa, the father of King Cakobau, and that of the Queen of Rewa, pleased them mightily. They always exclaimed, " They live ! They can see ! They speak !" I wish the artist had been there to hear the praise la- vished upon his productions. Kuruduadua left very late, and Danford went with him. Always making it a point to speak of people as I find them, I have nothing to say except what is in their favour. Both of them had been of the greatest service to us, and behaved well. Kuruduadua we found an intelligent, straightforward man, quite ready to listen to reason, prepared to come up to any obligations he had taken upon himself, and detesting all half-measures, all sham. Of Danford I have already spoken. He has been a pioneer, whose services in that direction I should not be inclined to undervalue, and without whom one of the most interesting episodes of my life would pro- bably not have occurred. We finally left the Navua river on the 5th of Sep- p 210 A MISSION TO VITI. tember, and stood over to Bega ( = Mbenga), an oval- shaped island, about five miles long by three wide, sub- ject to Rewa, and in some measure to Kuruduadua. No sooner had we cast anchor than Mr. Don, an English- man, came to the Consul, complaining that the natives, under pressure from the Tonguese, wished to compel him to let them have back again the land which he had bought, as they had given the island of Bega to the Tonguese. Mr. Pritchard went to the man who repre- sented himself as the principal chief, and told him that Mr. Don totally rejected the offer of ten fat pigs, or any other equivalent for the land he had acquired, and if they had given their island to the Tonguese, it was by no means binding, Maafu, the Tonguese chief, having publicly renounced all claims on and in Fiji ; and, until her Britannic Majesty's pleasure was known, the cession of Fiji to England was valid, and could not be ignored. Two Tonguese present tried to argue the point, but were signally defeated by one no novice in native tactics. One of our reasons for making Bega was to obtain some oil of the Dilo (Calophyllum inophyllum. Linn.), an excellent liniment for rheumatism, pains in the joints, bruises, etc., and enjoying a high reputation throughout the South Sea. Mr. Storck, my able assistant, had— after quite recovering from his fall in Somosomo — com- mitted the imprudence, whilst paying a visit to his friend Peter, the King's councillor, at Bau, to sleep a night between two open doors on a matted floor of a new house, in consequence of which he had gradually be- come so stiff as ultimately to be unable to move even his hands. We had to dress him, put him to bed, and MR. STORCK'S ILLNESS. — BEGA. 211 even feed him, his appetite being good all the while; and he, poor fellow, was so helpless that at one time he was falling in the sea, and only saved by the presence of mind of one on board. All the Fijian doctors recom- mended the external application of Dilo oil ; and for some calico we obtained two gourd-flasks full, with which the patient was rubbed several times a day. Fortunately our voyage was drawing to a close ; and I am happy to add, the greater comfort and change of food at Ovalau soon restored him to perfect health. We intended to proceed from Bega direct to Ovalau, but towards evening the weather became so fine — every sign of rain having disappeared — that the idea struck us to run over once more to Kadavu, and ascend if possible Buke Levu, the great mountain. The passage between Bega and Kadavu being an open sea, and we having a good pilot on board, in the person of Mr. Charles Wise, the consular interpreter, we left Bega just whilst the sun was gilding the feathery tops of the cocoa-nut palms, and diffusing a bright hue over the white coral beaches. Sailing all night, daybreak disclosed the bold out- line of Buke Levu, a mountain 3800 feet high, situate on the north-west point of Kadavu, and deriving its name from a certain resemblance to the hillocks (Buke) on which yams are planted; hence Buke Levu, the " large yam hill." No white man had ever ascended it, and, though laid down in the latest maps, its very name was not recorded. It will be remembered that we had made two distinct efforts to reach its summit, but were baffled by gales and rain. We now were about to p 2 212 A MISSION TO VITI. make the third. On bringing our little schooner to anchor off the town of Taulalia, heavy showers overtook us, and we began to despair of ever attaining our object, when about nine o'clock it suddenly cleared up. The natives, who had been watching from the beach, could not understand our hesitation in not landing at once, and in proof of their friendly disposition, brought out their women and children ; and, moreover, carried green boughs, as the soldiers do in Macbeth, when " Birnam wood removes to Dunsinane/' BUKE LEVU, SEEN FROM THE SOUTH. On learning our object in coming to their town, fifteen men and boys cheerfully volunteered to accompany us. The ascent commenced the moment we left Taulalia, and passing over cultivated grounds where the people were busy with their crops of sugar-canes, yams, taros, and plantains, we reached in about a quarter of an hour a village, where another party of natives joined us, and where we saw some fine plants of the different kinds of ASCENT OF BUKE LEVU. 213 kava, for which Kadavu is renowned. A narrow path, often winding along precipices and through rivulets, led to about 1500 feet elevation, where it gradually faded away, and the isolated patches of cultivation noticed up to this height, as well as the wood which had re-occu- pied ground at one time cleared and the masses of reeds gave place to an undisturbed virgin forest, through which we had to cut our way. We had taken the pre- caution of bringing a strong rope, sixty feet long, which, made fast to trees, proved extremely useful in dragging ourselves up almost perpendicular rocks, in the rainy season occupied by waterfalls, and even at this time of the year very slippery. On some of these were found a number of delicate ferns (Hymenopkyllum\ and quite a new species of land-shell (Bulimus Seemanni, Dohr.), fully two inches long, and of a bright salmon-colour. In order to save time, we had directed one of our men to push ahead and prepare a camp-kettle full of tea — of all beverages the best when one is tired and heated. When at last, after great exertion and frequent stopping to examine objects of interest, we reached the top, he and half-a-dozen others were already there, but they had omitted to bring either matches, firesticks, or water; and even the cocoa-nuts, packed up with the rest of the day's provisions, were too old for drinking. Being ex- tremely thirsty, we could not touch food, hungry though we were. The natives declared the nearest water to be more than 1000 feet down, and, as they had not the proper wood, it was impossible for them to kindle fire by friction. However, a man must have read ' Kobinson Crusoe ' to little purpose, if his resources fail him in 214 A MISSION TO VITI. moments like these. We were determined not to let our explorations come to a sudden stop for want of something to drink. Mr. Pritchard left me the option between procuring fire or water ; to guard against lame excuses on the part of the natives, it being thought ne- cessary that one of us should go with them in search of a spring. Knowing what a hard job it was to make fire by rubbing, without pausing, two pieces of wood to- gether, especially in the tropics, I declared in favour of getting the water. My companion, who did not seem to relish descending so many feet and climbing up again, was evidently pleased with his lot. In spite of all the natives were saying about making the wood answer, he resolutely began rubbing away. Great exertions were required ; hat, jacket, vest, and necktie discarded, to obtain greater freedom of action. At last came the reward. The wood began to smoke, sparks appeared, went out again, reappeared, and, brought in contact with a piece of bark-cloth cut off the tail of a boy's dress, soon produced a flame. All this time I had been sitting on an old stump, feigning to be quite insensible to certain broad hints about the desirableness of looking after the execution of my part of the contract. When the first flame had appeared I at last bestirred myself, and to the surprise of the fire-kindler, instead of going a long way for water, climbed up a neighbouring tree on which I had noticed an epiphytical plant (Astelia montana, Seem.), the leaves of which , acting as a kind of rain-gauge, were filled with pure water : by merely emptying these the necessary supply was obtained. Ere long, tea was ready, and re- A FINE VIEW. 215 lished all the more from recalling to mind the long es- tablished connection between cups, slips, and lips. After all hands had partaken of refreshment, a num- ber of trees were felled in order to gain, if possible, a view, the top of Buke Levu being densely wooded. No sooner had this been accomplished than, to our joy, the clouds which up to this time had been interposed be- tween us and the region below, dispersed, disclosing a great part of Kadavu and the sea. Our little schooner was snugly lying at anchor, flying the British colours ; but we listened in vain for the signal guns which the men had been directed to fire as soon as they should perceive the smoke of our fire, intensified at intervals by throwing heaps of green leaves upon it. We after- wards learned that it had been found impossible to dis- tinguish between smoke and clouds. A large native canoe, with its white triangular sail, was seen approaching the shore, and the blasts of the conch shells could be heard distinctly, though we were nearly 4000 feet high ; otherwise there was a deep silence, only occasionally broken by the dogs, which have become naturalized in these wilds, as the domestic fowls have in other parts of the group. The vegetation encountered was si- milar to that of Voma Peak in Viti Levu ; there were the same bright orange-coloured orchids (Dendrobium Mohlianum, Reichb. fil.) and the epiphytical ferns, but also several new species of plants. The Cinnamomum furnishing a superior kind of Cassia-bark was here as plentiful as in Great Fiji; a kind of Gummi Guttae (Clusia sessilis, Forst.) also engaged our attention. Buke Levu is evidently an extinct volcano ; and hot springs 216 A MISSION TO VITI. at its foot, near the town of Nasau, ascertained by Colonel Smythe to be 144° Fahrenheit, may possibly stand in some connection with its former activity. The outward look of the summit is very much like the cone of Vesuvius, as it was when I ascended it in 1861 ; but we did not discover any large crater, simply an insigni- ficant swamp. Having left on one of the trees a well-corked bottle containing the record of our visit, — that of the first white men who ever ascended the mountain, — we com- menced the descent, which presented in some parts se- rious difficulties, but, thanks to our rope, we overcame them all ; only one of the lads had a rather serious tumble, by which he sprained his ankle. Before we were more than halfway down it was completely dark, when the natives lit bundles of reeds and the stems of a weed (Erigeron albidum, A. Gray), both of which make excellent torches. On arriving at the first grove of cocoa-nut palms a general halt was made, and heaps of nuts were brought down from the trees and emp- tied of their contents with astonishing rapidity. It was past nine o'clock, just twelve hours after we started, when we reached Taulalia, where the whole village was assembled at and about the house of the Wesleyan teacher, a Fijian by birth, and our native companions had to give a most circumstantial account of our day's proceedings. We slept at the house of the teacher, which we found clean and comfortable. Early next morning all who had accompanied us had to sit in a row, — and a nice long row it was, — and every one received a butcher's knife, which INCONVENIENCE OF BARTERING. 217 elicited much clapping of hands, in proof that the gift was accepted : money would not have pleased half as much, as its use is not understood. All payments are made in kind, — a most irksome and cumbrous way, compelling you to carry a whole heap of things to defray the current ex- penses of a cruise ; articles regarded as small change, and making one look like a pedlar, you are supposed to have always about you. In one pocket you carry pipes and to- bacco— in great demand, but held rather cheap ; in an- other, fish-hooks, jews'-harps, and beads, the spare room to be filled with scissors and knives of various descrip- tions. On board are kept your gold and bank-notes, re- presented by bales of Manchester print, especially navy blue ; flannel jackets and woollen blankets, — killing the natives faster than brandy and the so-called vices of civilization, — and American hatchets, price five dollars apiece. The inconvenience and expense of paying for everything by articles of barter is increased by some of the goods not proving acceptable in all towns, and the natives refusing certain things because they happen to differ in some unimportant trifle from those generally in use. Fashion here, as elsewhere, rules supreme : knives with white handles instead of black would be objected to, though their blades might be first-rate; and I learned to my cost that it is absolutely useless to lay in stock at Sydney or Melbourne unless one obtains exact information regarding the articles in demand. On leaving Taulalia, September the 7th, we steered eastward, passing Yawe, the famous pottery manufac- tory, in order to bid farewell to Mr. Royce, the prin- cipal missionary at Tavuki, under whose hospitable roof 218 A MISSION TO VITI. we had previously stayed. Wishing to economize time, we left Tavuki at sunset for Ovalau ; we had put to sea scarcely an hour when the weather became squally and very thick, compelling us to take in all canvas ex- cept the foresail. We should have fared ill if it had not been for the presence of the consular interpreter, Mr. Charles Wise, who combines with a perfect know- ledge of the Fijian language, customs, and manners, the advantage of being one of the best pilots in the group, the more appreciated amongst the maze of more than two hundred islands, of which as yet no reliable chart has been prepared, though the labours of Wilkes, Bel- cher, Kellett, and Denham, have already done a great deal towards that desirable end. After an anxious night amongst reefs and shoals, we found ourselves off Rewra, and, as the wind had now become a gale, the rain was coming down in torrents, and the sea was very high, we took shelter inLaucala(=Lauthala) Bay, anchoring op- posite the premises of Mr. Pickering, an old settler in Fiji. The occupier was absent, but his people made us comfortable. A small schooner had just arrived from New Zealand with sixteen immigrants on board. The captain called on the Consul, and brought a file of colonial newspapers containing the latest European news. Vessels often making Fiji a week after leaving Auckland, we gene- rally had our latest intelligence via New Zealand. The captain was going to return immediately, taking oranges, pine-apples, and yams with him, and intending to come back with a fresh number of immigrants. Those that he had brought this time had found shelter at the MR. MOORE'S SERMON. 219 houses of the various white settlers about here. Mr. Pritchard and I called on several, to see what we could do for them. In comparison to New Zealand they found it rather warm in the group, while we, on the contrary, were quite chilly, and glad to have thick clothes on. They had not brought any mosquito curtains, and, like all new-comers, had suffered dreadfully during the first night from irritating bites, to guard against which in future the ladies were busy converting their light muslin dresses into defences against them. In the evening a boat took us over to the mission- station of Mataisuva, where Mr. and Mrs. Moore gave us, as usual, a hearty welcome. The weather still conti- nuing boisterous, we were easily persuaded to remain, es- pecially as the next day was a Sunday, and Mr. Moore, for the benefit of the new arrivals, was to have service in English. Sunday morning proved very fine, and when drums were beaten — why does not some kind- hearted person present this fine church with a good tolling-bell 1 — boats and canoes poured in from all direc- tions, and there was a large congregation, a gratifying sight after looking so long upon dark faces. Mr. Moore, a powerful and eloquent speaker, preached an extem- porary sermon, admirably adapted to those he was ad- dressing. Its tenor was that every man ought to do his duty in the position it had pleased Providence to place him in. Amongst his hearers there were probably very few who belonged to the denomination of which he is so bright an ornament, but in these out-of-the- way places all sensible people refrain from troubling their heads about the nice distinctions into which our 220 A MISSION TO VITI. Protestant Church has unhappily been split, and all Christians who are not Catholics never raise much ob- jection to forming part of a congregation, the members of which may more or less diifer from them in minor points of discipline or doctrine. Leaving Eewa roads on the morning of the 10th of September, we reached Port Kinnaird, Ovalau, on the following day, where our little schooner was refitted, and we made every preparation for another, my last, cruise in the group. Mr. Pritchard's work, which even in ordinary times was more than he could get through without the greatest efforts, and sitting up late or even whole nights, had accumulated to an alarming extent. The clerks he engaged proved worse than useless, though the pay which he could offer was three times what they would have got in England. After my departure he fortunately obtained the co-operation of Mr. Swan- ston as vice-consul, who, shortly after his installation in office, wrote me a letter, dated Levuka, July 9, 1861, a passage of which I shall take the liberty to quote, as it gives some insight into consular duties in this group : — " There were urgent entreaties from missionaries and white residents at Rewa, and all along the coast of Viti Levu, to Mr. Pritchard, to visit them. Complaints from whites to windward against Tonga movements generally ; and Mr. Henry complains in particular against Maafu, and seeks consular intervention. All this, etc., keeps Mr. Pritchard cruising about, and the office drudgery falls on me, and I have more than I can attend to ; to wit : — " Naval court yesterday. — Seamen complain against ' Caro- line's ' going to sea unseaworthy. Merchants and others put in claims against the master ; he drunk and disorderly on the OFFICE DRUDGERY. 221 beach ; have to put him under arrest. My constable gets intoxicated. Consular officer has to attend to it. Harvie, a Brit. subject, dead. Mr. Pritchard hands me in papers connected with the affairs, which he brought from Gau and Koro, whither he had to go last week on official business. Claims against this estate ; counter-claims, disputes, and trouble to me. Old T lodges a complaint against S ; accuses him of vio- lating the person of his daughter ; Levuka in a state of excite- ment about it. Binner in great distress about disputed land title of his. Wilson' s agent here, with chiefs from Na Lavu Lavu, to complete land titles. Clarke and Hazelman, ditto, ditto, from Na Viti Levu. Order from Hort, Bros., to seize schooner ' Kate/ unlawfully kept out of their possession. Com- plaints from Bob Somebody that Davies has kicked him oub without paying him his wages. Claims against Maafu for debts due four years ago ; American citizen connected with the affair ; have to refer to the U. S. Consul; go into the affair to-morrow if business permits. Maafu here to ascertain why a certain Fijirnan, sentenced some time since to three years' hard labour, is allowed to be at large ; crime, killing a Tongaman. He offers, and insists upon his right, to enforce the punishment if the Fiji chiefs cannot. Wilson's agent lodges complaint against Bothe, for inducing natives at Wai Levu to give to him logs belonging to the company of which Wilson is the acting partner. " And all these in two days ; and so the wheel goes : every case has to be examined into, evidence heard, judgment given, papers in connection made out, often in duplicate, and so on, and so on. I am tired. I have been at it all day; it is now midnight; so good-bye. ' ' Yours very truly, "ROBEKT S. SWANSTON." 222 CHAPTER XIV. VOYAGE AROUND VANUA LEVU. DEPARTURE FROM LADO. — EAST COAST OF VITI LEVU. NANANU ISLAND. THE FIJIAN MOUNT OLYMPUS. — BUA. NAICOBOCOBO. NUKUBATI. — NADURI. INTERVIEW WITH THE CHIEF. DISCONTENT OF HIS SUBJECTS. BECHE-DE-MER TRADE. — MUA I UDU AND ITS SUPERSTITIONS. NA CEVA BAY. ARRIVAL AT WAIKAVA. VISIT TO MY COTTON PLANTATION. MEETING AT WAIKAVA. — DEPARTURE. OUR schooner, which had been so much shattered during the stormy passage from Kadavu to Ilewa as to require a thorough refitting, again left Lado on the 10th of October. Mr. Pritchard had agreed to meet Colonel Smythe on the 17th of that month at Waikava, a town of Cakaudrove in Vanua Levu, and to bring thither all the most influential chiefs of that island. We stood over to the east coast of Viti Levu, and made it near Tova Peak, the bold cone-shaped outline of which could be seen from Lado in fine weather. The shores looked charming ; grassy slopes alternating with groves of trees, rivulets, and inhabited valleys. Towards 4 P.M. we an- chored off Nananu Levu (erroneously called Annan in the charts), close to the most northerly point of Viti Levu, and near another small island bearing the name of Nananu-gata. Like the adjacent coast, it is covered with grass, isolated screw-pines, and ironwood, and would seem well adapted for sheep and cattle. Poli- NA VATU. 223 tically it is under Viwa, which again is tributary to Ban. There may be about one hundred inhabitants, who lived in a town defended by a deep ditch and high earthen mounds. On the top of the island were extensive plan- tations of Kawai (Dioscorea aculeata, Linn.), and in the valleys thousands of bread-fruit trees. The people did not seem to take much notice of us, and altogether be- haved colder than any we had yet come in contact with. Remaining at anchor all night, our voyage was con- tinued early next morning to Bua, Sandalwood Bay. The north-eastern portion of Viti Levu, now fast fading away, is called Rakiraki, and famous in mythology as the site of Na Vatu, the Fijian Mount Olympus, and the abode of the supreme god Degei ( = Ndengei). It has been supposed that this portion of Viti was the first NA VATU, FKOM THE NOETH. 224 A MISSION TO VITI. to be inhabited, because all the tribes of the islands acknowledge Degei as their chief god, and own their knowledge of him to be derived from Rakiraki. There is nothing very remarkable either in the shape or cha- racter of the mountain, and, as far as our present in- formation goes, we are unable to account for the dis- tinction it enjoys. The accompanying sketch, obligingly furnished by Mrs. Smythe, will help to bear me out. About noon on the llth of October we were off Bua, no longer teeming with sandalwood as in days of yore. Our object was to invite Tui Bua, or King of Bua, to attend the meeting at Waikava. Our schooner not going close in, we went on shore in the dingy. The town of Bua is built on the banks of a river, the mouth of which for about a mile and a half is densely covered with mangroves:^ The district is low, the soil a rich alluvial clay. Bua has proved so unhealthy to Europeans that the white missionaries, after several deaths had thinned their ranks, were compelled to relinquish it, and fill their places with Tonguese teachers. This circum- stance is the more to be regretted as Bua was a most complete station. The church is a very neat building, and has a good tolling-bell, instead of those hideous wooden drums used in other parts for calling the con- gregation together ; the dwelling-houses are also highly finished. We found the principal one inhabited by the Tonguese teacher, who, together with his wife, was scenting cocoa-nut oil by adding rasped sandalwood and the white odoriferous flowers of the Bua (Fagrcea Ber- teriana, A. Gray), a tree from which the place probably derives its name. They were very attentive to us, and NAICOBOCOBO. 225 loaded us with baskets full of kavikas, or Malay-apples, and cocoa-nuts, several bottles of goat's milk, and a fine log of sandalwood, now in the Kew Museum. The houses had been stripped of most of their Eu- ropean furniture, the church was rather in want of re- pair, and the whole had that desolate appearance which all places built by Europeans, but abandoned by them to natives, invariably possess. After visiting the graves of those Christian pioneers who had here laid down their lives in a noble cause, I felt quite melancholy, and was glad to return on board. Tui Bua, the chief, being absent, and not expected back for some days, we made sail without delay. When evening came on we anchored off Bau lailai, and next morning rounded Naicobocobo ( = Naithombothombo), the west point of Vanua Levu, which is rocky and thickly- wooded, and supposed to be a general starting-point (Cibicibi) for Bulu, the future abode of departed spirits. It is erroneously called Dimba Dimba by Wilkes and all those who copied him. On the 12th of October we anchored off Nukubati, a sandy little island, full of cocoa-nut trees and breadfruit, a great many of which had been cut down or otherwise injured by the Ton- guese to revenge themselves on the Chief Eitova, whose private property the island is, and who had been driven from power by them to make room for a chief more willing to comply with their extortions than Eitova had shown himself to be. I went on shore and saw a party of women making pottery, which they did without a wheel, and extremely well. On the 14th we ran down to Macuata (=Mathuata), Q 226 A MISSION TO VITI. — not Mocuata or Mudwater, as sometimes written, — a small, stony isle, densely covered with ironwood, and at present uninhabited. This isle has conferred its name on the whole northern coast of Vanua Levu, and was the head-quarters of three branches of the ruling Macu- ata family, until about twenty-five years ago dissensions amongst its members broke out, which led to the total extinction of one of the branches, and proved to the others that a house divided against itself cannot stand. The whole coast had been subjugated by Tongamen; Ritova, the head of the most powerful branch, and the legitimate king of the district, was in exile ; whilst Bete, who represented the weaker and subordinate portion of the family, resided at Naduri, and was a mere puppet in the hands of the artful Tongamen. When making Nukubati we met a canoe going to Naduri, and sent a message by it to Bete, said to be attending some festival inland, that we were going to call at his town on the following day in order to make a communication to him. We had scarcely dropped anchor off Naduri when Bete's spokesman arrived in a large canoe. The first thing he delivered was a whale's tooth, dark as mahogany from age and repeated greas- ing, such as Fijians hold to be of the highest value. It was offered to the consul as a sow, or acknowledg- ment of submission and atonement from the chief. Mr. Pritchard hesitated about accepting it; but as its re- jection would have been a direct insult, he thought it better to take the tooth, and thus prevent any misun- derstanding and long explanations, both parties being fully aware of the real meaning of the token. BECHE-DE-MER TRADE. 227 We found Bete sitting in his house surrounded by councillors. Mr. Pritchard informed him that his pre- sence was required at Waikava at the meeting of chiefs, and his absence might prove disadvantageous to him- self; but his mind seemed to be made up, and he gave us to understand that he did not mean to go, as the time was too short. His Tonguese advisers had probably in- duced him to act in this way. I went some distance up a rivulet to bathe, and on my return met a number of Naduri people, who complained bitterly of the way in which they were ground down by the Tonguese, and how wretchedly poor they were in in comparison with formerly, when Mche-de-mer traders visited the. coast, and they were kept well supplied with foreign articles of barter in exchange for the sea-slugs they collected. They said there could be no revival of this lucrative trade until their old chief Eitova was restored to power, as Bete was so weak, and so little respected, that he could not get the requisite number of hands to- gether to make up a cargo. They were most anxious to know when Bitova was likely to come back, and asked repeatedly, but I turned off the conversation. There were a great number of sail-mats in Bete's house, and the people assured me that they were some of the tri- bute which the Tonguese extorted from them. The sea-slugs, or beche-de-mer (several species of the genus Holothuria), collectively termed " Dri " by the na- tives,* are found in great abundance on the reefs, espe- * The different species bear the following native names : — 1. Dri voto- voto ; 2. Dri alewa ; 3. Dri batibuli ; 4. Dri tarasea ; 5. Dri damu ; 6. Dri valadakawa ; 7. Dri daidairo ; 8. Dri lokoloko ni qio, etc. To show the profits of the beche-de-mer trade, I extract from Wilkes, of Q 2 228 A MISSION TO VITI. cially on the northern shores of Viti Levu and Vanua Levu. In July, 1862, they figured, perhaps for the first time in Europe, in the bill of fare at a grand dinner given in London at Freemasons' Tavern by the Acclimatiza- tion Society. A highly profitable trade in them was car- ried on, principally by the Americans, until a few years ago, through the political troubles caused by the inva- sion of the Tonga islanders, it became impossible to collect sufficient for filling a vessel fitted out on purpose. As peace has now been re-established, this trade will probably revive. As soon as a ship was full it sailed direct to Manila, where merchants were eager to pur- chase its cargo for the Chinese markets : a cargo of tea, sugar, and silks, was then taken in for the homeward voyage. Notwithstanding that no insurance of the ves- sels engaged could be effected, on account of the bad charts of Fiji, the profits realized were very great. A whole cargo, which cost $1200, brought $12,000 ; and another, which cost $3500, brought $27,000. As for nearly ten years no sea-slugs have been collected, any enterprising shipowner dispatching vessels there would be able to collect a rich cargo in a very short space of time. the United States Exploring Expedition, the following costs and returns of five cargoes obtained by an American, Captain Eagleston : — 1st voyage, 617 piculs, cost $1,100, sales $ 8,021 2nd „ 700 „ „ $1,200, „ $17,500 3rd „ 1,080 „ „ $3,396, „ $15,120 4th „ 840 „ „ $1,200, „ $12,600 5th „ 1,200 „ „ $3,500, „ $27,000 A further profit also arises from the investment of the proceeds in Can- ton or Manila. This same trader obtained also 4488 pounds of tortoise- shell at a cost of $5700, which sold in the United States for $29,050 net. MUA I UDU. 229 Eesuming our voyage, we found ourselves, October 15th, off Namuka, where we sent on shore for water. The crew, on returning, brought an armful of gardenias, a species quite new to science (Gardenia Vitiensis, Seem.), with beautiful white flowers, emitting a delicious scent ; and the young leaves of the shrub being enveloped in a thick coating of greenish gum, which, as they expand, gradually dissolves. There is a strange connection be- tween Namuka and Bau : both having, or rather having had, the same local gods, the people possess mutual rights similar to those of the Vasus, visitors being allowed to take whatever articles they choose. The advocates of the rights of women will also be glad to learn that the softer sex of Namuka can take their seats among the men ! On the 16th we rounded Mua i Udu, as the eastern extremity of Vanua Levu is termed, where, until lately, an old screw-pine stood, to which a strange supersti- tion attached: a man who could hit any part of this tree between the root and the crown with a whale's tooth, made sure that at his death all his wives would be strangled. On their way to Naicobocobo the spirits of the dead are supposed to do the same thing for the same purpose, there being a screw-pine at Takiveleyava. Eatu Mara, a chief well known in the annals of Fiji as a frequent disturber of the public peace, vainly tried to hit the tree at Udu ; enraged at his continued failures, he cut it down. But what use is it to wrangle at fate ] Eatu Mara ended his restless career at Bau. where, for repeated treacheries, the king thought fit to hang him, and all his wives escaped the fearful doom of strangu- lation. 230 A MISSION TO VITI. Having rounded Mua i Udu, we came in sight of Eabe and Taviuni, the wind being favourable all the while. At night we anchored in Na Ceva (=Natheva) Bay, partly to avoid rocks and reefs, partly because we could not keep our crew awake. The bay derives its name from Na Ceva (i.e. the south-east wind, to which it is open) ; Natava is therefore an erroneous spelling. In Wilkes's, and other charts founded upon his survey, it is not made deep enough, and the isthmus separating it from the southern shores of Vanua Levu, about ten miles too wide. The isthmus is scarcely more than a mile and a half across, and canoes are dragged from one side to the other, as is the case in Kadavu, though its surface is hilly. Colonel Smythe made an excursion to it from Waikava ; and in the chart Mr. Arrowsmith has constructed for him, this error of long standing has been corrected, as it is in the map accompanying this work. On the following morning we called at Rabe, a fine island, of which the Tonguese have made desperate attempts to obtain permanent possession, and towards the afternoon we reached Waikava, where the mission- aries from Taviuni had now established themselves, and where the official meeting with the principal chiefs of Vanua Levu was to be held. We found Colonel Smythe's vessel, the ' Pegasus,' at anchor, just returned from Lakeba, where, under pressure from the Tonguese, the chiefs had behaved rather rudely. On the following day I ran over to Somosomo, where, in the beginning of June, I had established an experi- mental cotton plantation. It took me nearly a whole day to cross the strait of Somosomo, there being almost a perfect calm. I found the plantation in the best FIJIAN POLITY. 231 order. To my great joy, there were ripe pods, and I could gather the produce of the very seeds only set three months ago. Mr. Coxon was glad to see me again, and availed himself of my invitation to go for a few days to Cakaudrove, as the eastern extremity of Vanua Levn is more particularly called. Shortly after my arrival, Eitova, the deposed chief of Macuata, called on me. I told him to leave oif black- ing his face, as it set foreigners against him, and was regarded as a demonstration of heathenism, though it might not be intended as such. Golea, or rather Ratu Golea, the chief of Somosomo, also dropped in. He had cut his hair short, and was so much altered for the worse, that I did not know him until recognizing him by his melodious voice. He had now about thirty wives ; and Eleanor, the Queen, had quite recently given birth to a fine boy, who would be " Vasu " to Bau, and about whom the natives were in ecstasy. The Fijians are not so prepossessing in appearance as those lazy and handsome fellows the Tonga men, who flock over here in great shoals ; but whilst the Ton- guese lose, the Fijians gain by a closer acquaintance. There is a manliness about them that is extremely win- ning ; and I quite agree with Macdonald, that if their likenesses could be accurately taken, they would form quite a contrast to the ill representations of these islan- ders extant. Ratu Vakaruru, whose portrait is given in the frontispiece, is one of the finest Fijians living ; but I cannot say that the copy I had made of Mac- donald's unpublished drawing does justice to him. Their language, so far as euphony goes, yields to none 1 have- heard in any quarter of the globe, and to my ear 232 A MISSION TO V1TI. it sounds as pleasing as Spanish or Italian. They are certainly not an idle people, and though not working like our own labourers, from six to six, they are great cultivators of the soil, skilful fishermen, and able builders and managers of canoes. Far from living under an ab- solute despotism, as is erroneously supposed, all the dif- ferent States of which Fiji is composed have institutions hallowed by age and tradition, fundamentally almost identical with those cherished by the most advanced nations. The real power of the State resides in the landholders or gentry, who, at the death of a ruler, pro- ceed to elect a new one in his stead from amongst the members of the royal family. Generally the son, but not unfrequently the brother, or even a more distant re- lation of the deceased, is elevated to the chieftainship, and loyally supported in his dignity as long as he car- ries out the policy of those who have set him up. If this " House of Commons," as by a stretch of language it may be called, finds its wishes and aims disregarded, the members avail themselves of the privilege of re- fusing supplies, which, in the total absence of money, consist in yams, taro, pigs, fowls, native cloth, canoes (the naval estimates !), and all the other requirements of a great Fijian establishment. The intractable chief who has attempted to play the despot is thus generally brought to a proper sense of his condition. Of course, chiefs who, by strong family connections, can afford to set the " Commons " at defiance, will occasionally do so ; then new expedients have to be resorted to, and the trial of strength which follows provides one of the ele- ments of political activity. Europeans might fancy that a barbarous people would readily adopt the more simple NARROW ESCAPE FROM CANNIBALS. 233 process of getting rid of an intractable chief by knock- ing him on the head ; and certainly that would be the solution adopted if usage had not provided a law for his protection, according to which he cannot be killed by any one inferior to him in birth. We have here the English law, that a peer cannot be tried except by his own peers, in its rudest embryonic form. It would be " taboo " for any commoner or serf to lay violent hands on a chief ; and, however obnoxious he might have been to the community, the taboo-breaker would not go un- punished. Outsiders might suppose that amongst a peo- ple destitute of all written law much confusion existed in regard to the application of this peculiar code of po- lity and customs. Never would a greater mistake be committed. All their usages are as firmly established, and as strictly adhered to, both in letter and spirit, as if they had been engraven on tablets of stone. The early white settlers soon found this out, and often owed the preservation of their lives to a thorough knowledge of this system. Thus, an Englishman, of the name of Pickering, once fell into the hands of a hostile tribe long on the look-out for his body. He soon became aware that they were making preparations for a canni- bal feast, of which he was to be the principal dish, though these preparations would not have been noticed by any one less versed in their peculiar customs. He knew that before they proceeded to kill him a bowl of kava would have to be made, that a prayer would have to be said over the beverage when ready, and that the person saying the prayer could not be the one eaten. Pretending utter unconsciousness of what was going on 234 A MISSION TO VITI. around him, he eagerly watched the moment when the preparation of the kava was advanced to the stage at which the prayer had to be said, and suddenly, to the utter dismay of his enemies, he pronounced the well- known formula. No one would now have dared to take his life, and he had the keen satisfaction of partaking of the refreshments provided for his own funeral. Ano- ther old settler, American by birth, had also the misfor- tune of being an object of hatred to a tribe opposed to, and at war with, the chief under whom he lived ; and, as ill-luck would have it, he met a strong party of his enemies making straightway for his boat. They were about to open fire upon him, when, with a coolness de- serving all praise, he exclaimed : — " Don't shoot ! I am a herald of peace, charged with carrying the token of surrender to your chief, and put a stop to further hos- tilities." The stratagem succeeded, and the self-styled herald effected his escape. I returned to Waikava on Saturday, October 20th, and on Monday following the official meeting was held. The chapel had been granted for that purpose. Mr. Carey, the resident missionary, interpreted the official business. Neither Bete nor Tui Bua had made their appearance ; Eatu Golea dropped in when all was over ; the only three chiefs therefore present were, Bitova, Bonaveidogo, and Tui Cakau, the king of Cakaudrove. After all business relating to the cession had been dis- posed of, Mr. Pritchard was occupied several hours in settling disputes between native and British subjects. Waikava, sometimes called Fawn Harbour, derives its name from a little fish (Kava), which at a certain sea- DEPARTURE OF THE 'PEGASUS* FOR NEW ZEALAND. 235 son of the year, enters the river (Wai), on which, the native town is situated. Tui Cakau, the King, had almost promised the missionaries that on their removal from Wairiki he would follow them with his whole court to Waikava ; but he had not done so as yet, and fears were entertained that he would not consider the promise binding. Jetro, the old Manila man, whom I met at Korovono, was now here, employed as a Scripture-reader. Only one of the missionary houses being finished, we had to sleep in the chapel, where large screens of bark-cloth ensured the necessary pri- vacy. Several heathen priests, on becoming Christian, have proved highly useful to the mission, and at this place there was one who occasionally, when praying rather more fervently than most people are wont to do, would suddenly begin to tremble and shake, as he used to do in his heathen state, and had no slight difficulty in checking himself in his old propensity. After the meeting the ' Pegasus ' returned to Levuka, where she arrived on the 26th of October, and as there was no further occasion for her, she returned to New Zealand, Colonel Smythe remaining behind. The ' Paul Jones' left a few hours after her the anchorage of Waikava, steering for Matei in Taviuni ; the Consul having determined to arrange, if possible, some terms between Eitova and those who had driven him from his land and estates, and thus try to heal a sore of old standing. But in order to understand the real diffi- culties of this case, it will be necessary to sketch the history of the Tonguese in Fiji, so far as I have been able to trace it from all the sources accessible. 236 CHAPTER XV. HISTORY OF THE TONGAMEN IN FIJI. — THEIR PHYSICAL SUPERIORITY OVER THE FIJIANS. — THEIR ARROGANCE. — CAPTAIN CROKER's DEFEAT. EARLY INTERCOURSE BETWEEN TONGA AND FIJI. — INCREASE OF TON- GUESE IMMIGRATION. — CHIEF MAAFU. — KING GEORGE OF TONGA VISITS FIJI. — CONQUEST OF KABA AND BABE. — ARRIVAL OF BRITISH CONSUL. — CESSION OF FIJI. — MAAFU'8 ATTEMPTED CONQUEST. — RITOVA AND BETE. — MAAFU'S AMBITION CURBED. — PEACE RESTORED. — RITOVA IN- STALLED IN HIS ESTATES. — TONGUESE INTRIGUES RENEWED. — BETE's DEATH. — COMMODORE SEYMOUR'S VISIT. TERMINATION OF THE WARS BETWEEN FIJIANS AND TONGANS. ONE of the many reasons which induced the King and Chiefs of Fiji to tender a formal cession of their beau- tiful island to the British Crown, and to ratify it with alacrity, was to escape from the insupportable exactions and tyrannies of the Tonguese. The Tonguese, or Friendly Islanders, may well be called the flower of the Polynesian race ; and Commander Wilkes was only sta- ting a truism when saying, that there were few spots on the whole face of the earth where one could behold so many handsome people together. They are tall men, with fine intelligent features, dark, often curly, hair, and of a light-brown complexion. They are far beyond the Fi- jians in good looks. This physical superiority, which, independent of the difference of race, the Tonguese en- joy over the Fijians, may partly result from the different treatment to which the women are subjected amongst THE TOXGUESE. 237 these two nations. Whilst in Tonga the women have been treated from time immemorial with all the consi- deration demanded by their weaker and more delicate constitution, not being allowed to perform any hard work, the women of Fiji are little better than beasts of burden, having to carry heavy loads, do actual field-work, go out fishing, and besides, attend to all the domestic arrange- ments devolving upon their sex in other countries. In- deed, their position is almost identical with that enjoyed, or rather endured, by their poor Indian sisters in North and South America. They have to work hard, and cheer- fully go through all the drudgery forced upon them by the lords of creation. I remember an eccentric friend of mine once remonstrating with a Fijian who allowed his wife to carry a large bundle of sugar-cane, whilst he leisurely walked by her side. He thought the remon- strance simply a piece of impertinence, and did not see why an inferior being should not be made to contribute to the comfort of a superior.* The Tonguese may also be called the Anglo-Saxons of the South Seas. Originally sprung from Samoa, at least their leading chiefs indisputably, they have over- run Tonga ; and finding that group also too small, they established colonies in Fiji, and of late made desperate attempts to conquer the whole group. The unqualified praise given to their good looks by all voyagers has made them rather conceited, and their success in war haughty and arrogant in the extreme. It is intelligible * The accompanying plate, representing Koro Basabasaga, on the Wai Levu, or great river of Viti Levu, gives a good idea of the treatment ; the man walking leisurely along, whilst the woman is carrying a heavy load of sugar-cane. 238 A MISSION TO VITI. that they should entertain a feeling of superiority over the native races whom they subdued ; but in conse- quence of an unlucky affair, almost forgotten in Eng- land, they look down upon all Europeans, and boast of having beaten a British man-of-war. In 1840, Captain Croker, of H.M.S. Favourite, visited the Tongan Islands, and was persuaded to take part with a body of native Christians against the heathens that opposed them, then shut up in several native forts at Bea. Carronades were brought within 106 yards of the principal fort, and all hopes of a peaceable arrangement having vanished,— " The command was given to make the attack, the captain leading the way. The sergeant of marines was ordered to scale the barricade and to fire. The attack was soon answered by the cannon at the entrances [of the fort] , and by a volley of musketry ; and the captain and several of his men were wounded. Notwithstanding his wound, Captain Croker ex- erted himself to the utmost to enter the stockade ; but failing in the attempt, and becoming faint from the loss of blood, he re- tired to a little distance, and while leaning against a tree for support, was shot through the heart, and dropped lifeless on the ground. His men continued the attack, but at great disad- vantage : the enemy was screened by their defences ; while the English, on the open ground, were exposed to the hot fire of the enemy. This sad affair ended in the death of two officers, besides the captain. The first lieutenant and nineteen men were dangerously wounded. It was with great difficulty that the sur- vivors contrived to carry off their dead and wounded." * The officer who succeeded Captain Croker in com- mand saw the absolute folly of losing any more men, and relinquished all thoughts of renewing the attack. One or two carronades had fallen into the hands of the * ' Tonga and the Friendly Islands.' By S. S. Farmer. London, 1855. Page 325 et seq. CAPTAIN CHOKER'S DEFEAT. 239 Tonguese. As the case stood, the British Government did not deem it just to ask for any reparation, and simply demanded the guns left behind. However, the Ton- guese were not slow in taking advantage of this turn of affairs, and quite ignoring that it was their own govern- ment as much as the foreigners who were repulsed, they have magnified the catastrophe into a grand victory, and become so arrogant, that Captain Cook, could he pay them another visit, would never dream of confirming the name of the " Friendly Islanders" which he gave them, in total ignorance of the fact, related by Mariner, that they had laid two plots to take his life, not carried out because no agreement could be arrived at respecting the details of the projected murder.* Ethnologists have long been watching the spread of the Tonguese over the South Sea, and Viti has become a field of high interest, as the light-coloured Tonguese, a genuine Polynesian people, have here met face to face powerful representatives of the dark-coloured Papuan race. • There seems to have been an intercourse between Fiji and Tonga from time immemorial, distinctly spoken of in the story of the Vasu ki Lagi and the Princess Vilivili-tabua, and other ancient Fijian legends, as, for instance, that about the spread of the practice of tatoo- ing. Independent of this legendary evidence, there are other proofs of an early intercourse. The Tonga islands not furnishing any large timber, it was necessary to go to Fiji for materials for canoes. Fine mats and native cloth, printed in choice patterns, were bartered away for permission to cut timber and build canoes. The eastern * Mariner's ' Tonga,' vol. ii. pp. 64, 65. 240 A MISSION TO VITI. parts of Fiji, Lakeba, and the adjacent islands, being the most accessible from their proximity to Tonga, were those chiefly visited ; and as it took considerable time to construct the larger canoes, a strong influx of Tonguese blood was soon perceptible in the population of those districts. Not unfrequently it happened that parties going or coming were drifted by the prevailing winds on the shores of Kadavu, and hence the mixed race in- habiting that fine island is accounted for. Lakeba and Cakaudrove were formerly intimately connected, and the latter being the high-road to Bua, the Tonguese seem to have become introduced to the locality, where, above all others, the famous Sandal-wood (Yasi), so highly valued both in Tonga and Samoa for scenting cocoa-nut oil, grew in abundance.* They were not long before they made regular trading voyages to Bua, bring- ing with them printed tapa, fine mats, and large pearl- shells, skilfully inlaid with pieces of whales'-teeth. Hav- ing often to wait two or three months before a cargo of sandal-wood could be got ready, a close intimacy naturally sprang up between the trading parties, inter- marriages took place, and thus another district received a mixed population. Up to this period the Tonguese had been peaceful traders, glad to exchange their manufactures for na- tural products denied to their own islands. Gradually they adopted a different line of policy. Being men of athletic frames, of courage and daring, they were often * Cakaudrove (= Thakaundrove) lias been corrupted by the Tonguese into " Tacownove," and in some old charts is applied to the whole of Va- nua Levu. MAAFU. 241 asked to assist in the feuds in which chiefs friendly to them were engaged, receiving canoes and other pro- perty in return for their services. From being mere mercenaries, they gradually began to act on their own responsibility, readily avenging every outrage from time to time committed against any of their countrymen on the smaller islands of the eastern group, where they could calculate the exact number of their possible op- ponents.* With the constantly increasing influx of Tongan immigration, chiefs came over, who undertook the ma- nagement of their countrymen, and among them Tui Hala Fatai, mentioned by Mariner, and Tuboi Tutai, spoken of as Tuboi Totai by Wilkes. About 1848, Maafu, another of their chiefs, and destined to exer- cise a vast influence on Fijian affairs, made his ap- pearance. Married to one of the highest ladies of his native country, descended from the ancient royal line (Finau), gifted with great personal advantages, and possessing as comprehensive and ambitious a mind as rarely falls to the lot of a Polynesian, Maafu began to prove a dangerous rival to King George, the chief seated on the throne of his ancestors. He had already shown his disposition in a sandal-wood expedition to the New Hebrides, which originated with Messrs. Henry and Scott. " About December, 1842, two vessels under British colours, the ' Sophia ' and ' Sultana/ and a third which was said to have carried the flag of Tahiti, arrived [at Tonga] to raise a party for the purpose of forcibly cutting sandal-wood at the New * Compare Mariner's 'Tonga,' vol. i. p. 72-76. R 242 A MISSION TO VITI. Hebrides. A brother of the late King Josiah, Maafu, engaged with the leader of the expedition (Henry) to furnish sixty men. They touched at Lakeba to reinforce their numbers, but could not procure volunteers, and continued their course to Eromango. Here the party, armed with muskets, were landed, and a quan- tity of sandal-wood cut and embarked. The natives continued friendly for the first few days, but at the end of that time, some of them having stolen three axes, a disturbance took place, when one of the supposed thieves was shot by the Tongans. The fire was returned by arrows, which wounded a Tongan, who after- wards died. In consequence of this affray they left Eromango, and proceeded to Vate, or Sandwich Island, where he and his men were again landed, armed, and directed to cut wood, the white men remaining on board of their vessels. Before long they had a battle with the natives, who, having no muskets, were defeated with a loss of twenty-six killed, none of the in- truders being injured. A fort was afterwards stormed and taken, when several more were killed ; the remainder retreating to an island, where they hid themselves in a cave, whither they were pursued by Maafu and his party. After firing into the cave, which seemed to have no effect, the besiegers, pulling down some neighbouring houses, piled the materials in a heap at its mouth, and, setting fire to it, suffocated them all."* King George, the present ruler of Tongaf , having subdued a rebellion in which Maafu took a prominent part, deemed it prudent to send Maafu to Fiji, osten- sibly for the purpose of keeping his countrymen in order, but really to get him out of the way. At the Same time a hint, perhaps more than a hint, was thrown out that no objections would be made if Maafu did in Fiji what King George had done in Tonga, make himself master of the whole group. Maafu's first ex- * Eskine, ' Western Pacific,' p. 143. Behaving, in fact, as barbarously to them as a few years later a French General did to an Algerian tribe, t Farmer's ' Tonga and the Friendly Islands,' p. 398. MAAFU. 243 ploit took place at Lomolomo. Two Fijian chiefs fight- ing against each other, Maafu's assistance was solicited, and readily given to the weaker party, to which a Ton- guese teacher of Christianity was attached. After the stronger party had been defeated by the combined efforts of its Fijian and Tonguese opponents, the native conquerors found themselves so heavily indebted to their foreign ally, and so much in his power, that they became easy victims to his intrigues to usurp their au- thority altogether. Maafu never espoused a cause on its own merits. The principle upon which, in this in- stance, and in almost every other, he seems to have acted, was to assist the weaker party against the stronger, and after its defeat turn round upon his allies, with whose weaknesses he had become perfectly acquainted during their familiar intercourse.* The quarrel at Lomolomo made him master of the whole grouplet of Vanua Balavu, and having thus obtained a solid footing, his rise was rapid. Elated with success, he used to challenge any chiefs to try their courage and skill in a canoe of equal size, and with an equal number of men to his own ; but no one, not even Ratu Mara, justly looked upon as the most able sailor and comman- der of Fiji, could be induced to accept the challenge. The second opportunity that presented itself to Maafu for extending his power was offered by interfering at Matuka. There again two chiefs were quarrelling, and the party to which the Tonguese teacher belonged, was * Even in Tonga his conduct was identically the same. Compare Farmer's detailed account of the rebellion in which he took part. ' Tonga and the Friendly Islands,' p. 398. R 2 244 A MISSION TO VITI. again the weaker. In a fight between the hostile par- ties the Christian chapel and the house of the teacher caught fire, and were totally destroyed. Maafu at once set off to avenge the injury done to his countryman, took the side of the weaker party, defeated the stronger ; and then, turning round upon his friends, displaced their rightful chief by one of his own creatures. A similar affray took place at Muala, where Maafu, by hook or by crook, was again victorious. In March, 1855, King George of Tonga availed him- self of the opportunity presented by the missionary vessel ' John Wesley,' to pay a visit of state to Cakobau, the supreme chief of Bau, and titular King of Fiji. Cakobau was at that particular time in considerable trouble. Kaba, an important place in the neighbour- hood of his capital, was in open rebellion against him, headed by Eatu Mara ; and as he had but recently lost much of his influence by renouncing heathenism, he felt himself scarcely strong enough to put down Kaba single-handed. In an evil hour he was persuaded to apply to King George for assistance, and the latter rea- dily complied, on being presented with a canoe fifteen fathoms long for the promise of assistance. A large fleet of canoes, and a strong reinforcement of warriors, soon arrived from King George's dominions. By the combined forces of Bau and Tonga, Kaba, to Fijian no- tions an impregnable fortress, was taken (April 7th, 1855*), and the authority of Cakobau re-established. Maafu and his countrymen had prominently distin- guished themselves on this occasion, and their exploits * J. Waterliouse, ' Vali-tah-ah,' pp. 111-121. AN UNEXPECTED ARRIVAL. 245 were the subject of comment in the remotest parts of the group. Bau acquitted itself handsomely of the debt it owed, by presenting King George with the ' Ca- kobau,' a schooner of eighty tons built in the United States. The example set by Bau, of putting down re- bellion at home by foreign assistance, was speedily fol- lowed by another Fijian state. Kabe (= Rambeh), an island of considerable size, had disputed the authority of the ruling chief of Cakaudrove, Tui Cakau; and King George having proffered assistance, it was readily ac- cepted by Tui Cakau. Rabe fell, and the Tonguese were in the habit of calling it their own, until, in 1860, Maafu, in the name of King George, received payment for the assistance rendered. The conquest of Kaba and Babe had conferred upon Maafu and his followers such a high prestige that the Fijian chiefs began to tremble for their own safety, and the impolicy of calling in foreigners to suppress rebel- lion at home seemed to dawn upon the more far-seeing among them. Maafu was not slow in perceiving the advan- tage he had gained, and his favourite plan of subduing the whole of Fiji appeared now to have arrived at ma- turity. By cunning intriguing and a bold system of warfare, he hoped to carry it into execution. Returning to Lomolomo, he set about building a schooner of thirty- five tons, which should at once place him at an advan- tage with enemies who had to rely solely upon canoes. Nor did he fail to make other preparations for conquest, and he would have commenced hostile operations with- out delay, if it had not been for the unexpected arrival of H. B. M. Consul, Mr. W. Pritchard, who landed in 246 A MISSION TO VITI. Fiji on the 10th of September, 1858, to take up his permanent abode in this important group. Bau was again in trouble. For various outrages asserted to have been committed against the life and property of Ame- rican citizens, the Government of the United States de- manded indemnity from Cakobau, as supreme chief of Bau and titular King of Fiji. The corvette ' Vandalia,' Captain Sinclair, had been sent to enforce the claim, and as the sum of 45,000 dollars was altogether beyond the means of the Fijian King to pay, overtures were made to Mr. Pritchard for the cession of Fiji to Great Britain, on condition that this sum, which the natives were going to refund by assigning the proprietorship of 200,000 acres of land, be liquidated. In November, 1858, Mr. Pritchard departed home to lay this offer be- fore her Britannic Majesty's Government, and no sooner had he left the group than Maafu commenced operations. Eitova and Bete, chiefs of the Macuata coast of Vanua Levu, were fighting out some old family feuds. Bete, being worsted, concluded an alliance with Tui Bua, an- other chief of importance on the south-western coast of Vanua Levu, who owed Eitova a grudge for a defeat in a former war. But even thus strengthened, Bete was unable to cope with his rival. Maafu saw that here was his chance. Friendly messages were dispatched to Eitova, who, delighted with the moral support of so powerful a chief, forwarded sail-mats and other valu- able presents. At the same time Maafu sent messages equally friendly, but more sincere, to Tui Bua, and through the Tonguese residing there prompted him to apply for assistance against Eitova. This idea was no TONGUESE ATTACKING RITOVA. 247 sooner suggested than carried into effect, and Maafu became the declared ally of Tui Bua and Bete. This new combination could not but excite deep ap- prehensions at Bau, as tending to derange that poli- tical balance which that power deemed it necessary to uphold in order to maintain its supremacy. Maafu, duly informed of the cloud gathering in that quarter, repaired straightway to the capital, and almost suc- ceeded in dispelling it. He made out that he had sent only a few men under the charge of his officer Wai-ni-golo, and he even endeavoured to persuade Ca- kobau to aid him by dispatching canoes to the scene of action, as the whole affair when terminated would add fresh lustre to the supremacy of Bau. Cakobau how- ever contented himself with ordering one canoe to ac- company the expedition, more to watch proceedings and furnish correct reports than to take any active share in the operations. On leaving Bau, Maafu gave out that he was going direct to Bua, to see how his men were getting on, instead of which he proceeded to Lo- molomo for reinforcement. Wai-ni-golo, the Tonguese officer previously sent to Bua, had orders to provoke a direct quarrel with Kitova ; he obeyed them by taking two villages and putting most of the inhabitants to death. By the time this was accomplished Maafu and the reinforcement arrived at Bua, where Tui Bua was taken on board the Tonguese schooner, and the whole party proceeded to the Macuata coast. The combined forces now took town after town, until they reached Nukubati, Ritova's stronghold, which, after consider- able resistance, fell into their hands. Ritova, nothing 248 A MISSION TO ViTI. daunted, retreated to the mountains at the back of Nu- kubati, where he was regularly besieged. But fate was against him. Chief Bonaveidogo, one of his followers, at this critical time went over to Maafu's side, to save his life and that of his vassals ; and Bitova, finding further resistance on the Macuata coast hopeless, escaped with the remnant still firm to him across the mountains to Solevu, where Tui Wai Nunu, a chief friendly to him, resided. Solevu (Sualib, of Wilkes) is a little district on the southern side of Vanua Levu, between Bua and Cakau- drove, which acknowledged a sort of vassalage to Bau, but was otherwise independent. In order to humour Tui Bua, who was eager to annex this district to his territories, Maafu had promised to subject it for him, and with that view had already left in it a detachment of men. By Ritova's retreat to this very district, a fine opportunity of killing two birds with one stone pre- sented itself. Rounding the western parts of Yanua Levu, the allied forces appeared before the town of So- levu, which, being strongly fortified, held out against the invaders three whole months. At the end of that time, the besieged were in extreme want of fresh water, the besiegers having diverted a rivulet supplying the town from its course, and all the wells being dry. Un- able to hold out any longer, Solevu surrendered. When Ritova and Tui Wai Nunu heard this news, they per- ceived it was hopeless to prolong the struggle. Mean- while Maafu had caused it to be known that he had promised Mr. Swanston, the acting British Consul, to spare Ritova's life, if he were taken. Ritova therefore DISPOSAL OF CONQUERED TERRITORIES. 249 thought it advisable to give himself up, and for some time he was a prisoner under the immediate eye of the victorious chief. But Maafu's followers were most un- willing to see this promise kept ; they pressed him hard to get rid of a man at once so bold and so dangerous. Maafu, on one side assailed by his unruly mob, on the other bound by a promise which he deemed it prudent not to treat lightly, solved the dilemma by allowing Ki- tova to escape to Cakaudrove, and in order to blind his vassals and allies, he pretended to be enraged at his es- cape, and dispatched men in pursuit of the fugitive. Maafu now proceeded to dispose of the conquered territories. Solevu was annexed to Tui Bua's dominion ; the western part of Macuata was placed under Bete, the eastern under Bonaveidogo, with the express under- standing that each of the favoured parties had to pay a stipulated tribute. In this distribution, the claims of Bau on Solevu had been altogether disregarded. If any- thing had been wanting to open the eyes of Cakobau, it was furnished by these high-handed proceedings, which sounded like scorn to a proud people, who had been led to believe that whatever was done in this war would tend towards extending and consolidating the autho- rity of the supreme power in Fiji. More humiliation was in store for Bau. In order to avoid as long as pos- sible a direct contest with that state, Maafu retired to Lomolomo to direct his operations. Bau was to be got between two fires. A strong fleet of canoes was dis- patched to Bega, an island, through Rewa, subject to Bau, and which, overawed by the superior force suddenly appearing, gave itself up to the Tonguese ; whilst Tui 250 A MISSION TO VITI. Bua was directed to get up a quarrel at Rakiraki, the north-eastern district of Viti Levu, subject to Bau through Viwa. Everything was thus progressing favour- ably, and a few months more would have brought about the overthrow of Bau, making Maafu virtually master of all Fiji. At this critical moment Mr. Pritchard re- turned from England with intimation that her Britannic Majesty's Government had taken the cession into favour- able consideration. Soon after his arrival, a meeting of Fijian chiefs took place at the British Consulate, in Levuka, with the view of ratifying the cession made by Cakobau, and they availed themselves of the opportunity to appeal to Mr. Pritchard to check Maafu's grasping career. They founded this appeal upon the fact that Fiji was already ceded to the Queen of Great Britain, and that Maafu, as a foreigner, was taking the country from her. After a tedious discussion of five hours, Maafu consented to renounce all political claims on and in Fiji, and the lands conquered, by signing an instrument to that effect, in the presence of all the chiefs assembled, her Britannic Majesty's Consul, and Commander Cam- pion, of her Majesty's ship Elk.* "Know all men by these presents, — 1. That I, Maafu, a Chief of and in Tonga, do hereby expressly and definitely state, that I am in Fiji by the orders of George, King of Tonga, as his representative, and that I am here solely to manage and control the Tonguese in Fiji. 2. That I have, hold, exercise, and enjoy no position nor claim as a chief of or in Fiji. 3. That all Tonguese claims in or to Fiji are hereby renounced. 4. That no Tonguese in Fiji shall exact or demand anything whatever * The English version of this document is here subjoined ; one of the copies of it I brought home is now in the library of the British Museum. MAAFU EENOUNCING CLAIMS OF FIJI. 251 from any Fijian, under any circumstances whatever, but they shall enjoy the privileges and rights accorded to other nations in Fiji. 5. That the lands and districts of Fiji which have been offered by various chiefs to me are not accepted, and are not mine, nor are they Tonguese, but solely and wholly Fijian. 6. That the cession of Fiji to England is hereby acknowledged. In witness whereof I have hereto set my name, this 14th day of December, 1859. MAAFU. "We hereby certify that the foregoing Chief Maafu signed the above document in our presence, this 14th day of December, 1859. — WILLIAM T. PEITCHARD, Consul; H. CAMPION, Comman- der R.N., H.M.S. Elk. We hereby certify that we translated the foregoing docu- ment to Maafu, a Chief of Tonga, who has signed, and that he thoroughly understands its meaning. — W. COLLIS, Wesleyan Training Master ; E. P. MARTIN, Wesleyan Mission Printer." The peace of the group, which, to the serious disadvan- tage of trade, had been so long interrupted, was thus at length re-established ; but the wounds inflicted by the war were not so easily healed. The Tonguese did not content themselves with merely taking a place. They plundered and set fire to the dwellings, cut down the fruit-trees, filled up the wells, ravished the women, and put to death as many of the fighting-men as their fero- city prompted them ; even those who had given them- selves up as prisoners were often mercilessly murdered in cold blood. When Maafu and his hordes had been at a place, it was as if a host of locusts had descended. Not only had every vestige of provisions, pigs, fowls, yams, and taros been devoured or carried off, but the plantations themselves had been ruthlessly destroyed, forcing the poor natives to seek such wild roots as would enable them to eke out their miserable existence. Yet, 252 A MISSION TO VITI. after all their provisions, tools, native cloth, canoes, and other moveables had either been carried off or destroyed, they had to set to work making cocoa-nut oil, sail-mats, and other articles for their conquerors. The intensity with which a Fijian hates a Tonguese need therefore cause no surprise. Yet there were not wanting people who applauded what had been done, and who were rather displeased to see the policy pursued by the in- vaders brought to such a sudden conclusion. Maafu knew full well that he stood in need of such friends, and he had set early about making them. He had three different bodies to interest in his conquest, — his own immediate followers, the foreign traders, and the Wesleyan missionaries. The Tonguese were easily at- tached to his cause by giving them unlimited license to rob and plunder the country, and ravish the women ; the foreign traders he made his supporters, by running up heavy bills for powder, shot, arid general stores, which stood no chance of being paid, unless it was in contri- butions in cocoa-nut oil, tortoiseshell, and beche-de~mer, extorted from the conquered places ; whilst the Wes- leyan missionaries were kept quiet by Maafu making it the first condition, in arranging articles of peace, that the conquered should renounce heathenism and become Christians. The thousands of converts thus added to their flock, completely blinded the missionaries to the danger they were incurring in coquetting with so un- scrupulous an adventurer. It was only after Macuata had been reduced, and public opinion had severely con- demned the massacre of prisoners at Natakala and Na- duri by Jamisi, one of Maafu's officers, that they saw DEFENCE OF THE MISSIONARIES. 253 the necessity of protesting against the unsanctioned use which had been made of their name. I shall probably be accused, by those versed in Fijian affairs, of an undue partiality for the Wesleyan mission- aries, by viewing their conduct in the light I do, and endeavouring to separate the doings of the missionaries from those of the barbarous hordes who overran the country. I admit that the latter is a matter of no slight difficulty. Christianity had early taken root in Tonga ; and when, in 1835, the Wesleyans in that group deter- mined to extend their operations to Fiji, they naturally fixed upon Lakeba, and those parts where a strong popu- lation of Tonguese was already established, and where they could use a language familiar to them until Fijian nad been learnt. Tongamen were found extremely well qualified for acting as pioneers in teaching the rudi- ments of the Christian faith ; and during the whole period that the Wesleyans have been labouring for the conversion of Fiji, they have employed a large number of them. They were spread over the whole country, and, unfortunately, became in Maafu's hand, ready instru- ments for the execution of his plans. They supplied him with reliable information about the quarrels, weak- nesses, and resources of the different territories, were never tired of praising their great chief, and ever ready to prompt the Fijian rulers to apply to him in cases of dispute and war. All these facts cannot be gainsaid ; and those must be strangely ignorant of the working of the Polynesian mind, who fancy that doctrines of so recent a growth as those of Christianity would ever induce a native of subordinate position to remain in- 254 A MISSION TO VITI. different to the wishes and orders of his chief. When King George visited Fiji, it was in the ' John Wesley/ and it was on board of that vessel the arrangement rela- lative to the subjugation of Kaba was concluded. Fi- nally, nothing was said by the missionaries whilst Maafu achieved his conquest, and it was only after great atro- cities had been committed that a letter of remonstrance was addressed to him.* Yet, notwithstanding these facts, occasionally urged with great vehemence, I dismiss, as utterly unfounded, the idea that the missionaries concocted the whole plan with the Tonguese. A calm review of all the informa- tion on hand, rather leads to the conclusion that Maafu was leading the missionaries to believe that he was ad- vancing their interest, when indeed he only abused their * The following is a copy of a letter sent to Maafu, extracted from the records of the Wesleyan Missionary Society at Sydney, by the Hev. J. Eggleston : — "There is something, Sir, which I wish to tell you, i.e. our hatred of the deed performed at Nabekavu amongst the people of Natakala. It was of no use whatever. If it was not done by your orders, please inform me, that I may defend your character. There is another subject which I de- sire also to make known. It is extensively reported that this war is the work of the missionaries. If this be true, tell me now which of us has sanctioned the hostile proceedings. Was it me, or whom? Please inform me, for it will be published prejudicially all over the world. If we are belied, be kind enough to vindicate us in your letter to me. Tell your people also to announce you (as the author), and not to announce us. I do not wish to prevent your approach to Ulumatua and Wai JSTunu. Please yourself about this ; for yours is its goodness, and yours is its evil. But command your warriors to announce you ; do not let them announce us, as we do not sanction it in the least. It is also rumoured that it is our ad- vice that Mara, Bitova, Tui Levuka, and another be put to death. If you seize these, do not deliver them to be killed, lest it be said that it is by our advice. We have not come to make known a message of death ; our work allotted to us is preaching. But if a man disturb the country, let his chief bring him to a trial.— 30^ July, 1859." [I have not seen the answer to this letter, if there was one.— B. £] TONGUESE TACTICS. 255 name in order to advance his own ; and they perceived too late that they had been made the dupes of an un- scrupulous and ambitious man. At the height of his power, Maafu is supposed to have had no less than three thousand fighting-men of his own nation, independent of his Fijian allies, and after the signing of the document of the 14th of December, 1859, had placed a curb on his ambition, the number re- maining was still sufficiently great to cause uneasiness to the natives. On the part of Mr. Pritchard it re- quired extreme watchfulness, lest the bloodshed which had so seriously diminished the population and injured the prosperity of the islands should be renewed. Maafu exhibited little inclination to return to Tonga; there was still hope that, in case England should reject the proffered cession, the conquest of the whole group by Tonguese arms might become a reality. He therefore enjoined his partisans to remain quite passive until the danger was past, and not commit any rash act. A cha- racteristic letter to that effect was sent in the middle of 1860 to Bega and Kadavu, the contents of which became a public secret. But men, who had so long been accus- tomed to behave with all the insolence of conquerors, who regarded Fiji in no other light save a fair field for lust and plunder, and would not disdain to plant the battle-axe in the public squares, and insultingly demand either an ample supply of animal and vegetable food or the heads of so many Fijians — such men were not easily kept quiet. Complaints were rife wherever Tongamen resided, how they plundered the natives, and how, by intimidation, they forced the weaker chiefs to behave 256 A MISSION TO VITI. discourteously towards the whites. When Colonel Smythe visited Lakeba, he found its chief so surrounded by Tonguese, and so much under their immediate influence, that he almost repudiated the cession, and he could scarcely prevent their almost insulting him, by crowd- ing the house in which the official meeting took place to an inconvenient degree. It is impossible to deter- mine whether the Tonguese were emboldened by the impunity with which they had been able to show them- selves so troublesome on this and other occasions, or whether the nature of the intercourse of Colonel Smythe with the Fijian chiefs was by them regarded as proof that the British Government was dissatisfied with Mr. Pritchard's checkmating them ; but in October, 1860, they loudly proclaimed their intention to interfere once more in the affairs of Macuata. Chief Eitova was to be captured and sent as prisoner to Tonga, whilst the people living on his patrimonial estates of the islands of Kia and Cikobia, were to be carried over in a body to Udu, and placed under the control of Chief Bonaveidogo, whom Maafu had rewarded with the government of eastern Macuata. Eitova, since his loss of power, had taken up a tem- porary residence at Matei, in the island of Taviuni, where a party of adherents gradually gathered around him. He had repeatedly laid his case before Mr. Pritchard, showing how unjustly he had been deprived of his patri- monial estates, and asking permission to accept the offer of friendly brother-chiefs, to reinstate him by force of arms. Mr. Pritchard thought an appeal to arms un- necessary, and told Eitova that his case should be taken MEETING AT WAI KAVA. - 257 in hand as soon as the requisite information could be collected. The exiled chief had found a warm sup- porter in the late Mr. Williams, United States Consul, who called the attention of his Government to the facts, that since Bitova's removal, American whalers had been unable to obtain supplies on the northern shores of Vanua Levu, and that the bSche-de-mer trade of Macu- ata, for years carried on by enterprising American citi- zens, and yielding lucrative returns, had become totally extinct. Mr. Williams's able successor, Dr. Brower, took the same view of the matter. Others were not want- ing who pointed out that any distribution of territories made by the Tonguese leader had become null and void by his publicly renouncing every right of interference in the affairs of Fiji. On the 22nd of October, 1860, a meeting was held at Wai Kava (Cakaudrove), to which all the chiefs of Vanua Levu, Ritova amongst them, had been invited, in order to give Colonel Smythe an opportunity to inquire into their views respecting the cession of Fiji, and also to discuss with Mr. Pritchard the affairs of Macuata. Two of the chiefs, Tui Bua and Bete, did not appear; the former being on a journey when the message was sent, the latter pretending that the notice given was too short to enable him to attend. But Bonaveidogo, who deserted Ritova in the hour of trial and was rewarded for his treachery with the whole of eastern Macuata, had made his appearance. Bonaveidogo and Ritova had not seen each other since then, and as it was necessary, for the establishment of a durable peace, that the two should be brought face to face before the public meeting took s 258 A MISSION TO VITI. place, Mr. Pritchard arranged an interview. Neither of them had received the slightest intimation of this ar- rangement, and when Bitova was conducted to a part of the house screened off by large curtains of native cloth, and suddenly found himself in the presence of a former ally and a present enemy, he was quite startled ; whilst Bonaveidogo, sitting on the matted floor, evidently thought his last moment come, and involuntarily grasped his club. When the object of the interview had been explained to be a mutual adjustment of old grievances, both chiefs remained mute for some minutes. " Why did you club Bete's father V asked Bonaveidogo, in the course of the altercations that now ensued. " Because," replied Ritova, tartly, " he had previously clubbed my father, and as a Fijian chief I was bound to resent; if I had known," he added emphatically, " that you were going to betray me, I should not have hesitated to take your life also." Words ran occasionally very high, but gradually the two disputants grew cool ; they promised mutually to forget and forgive, and finally concluded a peace over a bowl of kava. After the meeting about the cession was terminated, Mr. Pritchard declared that, having carefully gone into Ritova's case, he had made up his mind to restore him to his home on Nukubati. There should be no fighting, and every act that could give rise to provocation must be carefully avoided. This announcement caused a great sensation amongst the chiefs and landholders assembled. No Fijian chief, driven from his land, had ever been known to return without hard fighting ; and here was a white man, with no armed force to back him, who pro- RITOVA'S PLACE OF EXILE. 259 mised to do in his own peaceable way what would have cost numbers of lives if done in Fijian usage. When the natives found they need no longer fear being called to account by Maafu's bullies, they openly rallied round Bitova. Tui Cakau, the ruling chief of Cakaudrove, offered his largest canoe, a recent present from Ban, for Ritova's use ; and his brother Ratu Golea, chief of Somosomo, insisted upon seeing the exile safe home. Knowing the effect produced on the native mind by acting with promptitude, the next morning was fixed for starting. At sunrise, the schooner ' Paul Jones ' fired a gun by way of signal, and steered for Matei, fol- lowed by the native canoes, and having on board, besides Mr. Pritchard and myself, Ritova and three of his adhe- rents. One of the latter was a young man, whose father was a strong supporter of Bete, Ritova's rival ; and it was probably with the approbation of his parent that he joined Ritova — the Fijian knowing, as well as people nearer home did in the time of the rebellion, that it it is rather politic if, in a doubtful quarrel between two pretenders, the father fight on one side, the son on the other, when, come what may, the family property is safe, and there is alwajs one to intercede for the captive. Owing to the calms nearly always prevailing in the Straits of Somosomo, Matei was not reached until the second day after our departure, when Ritova went on shore to inform his people of what had passed, and order them to get ready for starting without d,elay for Nukubati. Great was the joy caused by this announce- ment, and everything was at once bustle and activity. The women were packing up the household goods ; the S 2 260 A MISSION TO VITI. boys and young men hastened to the forest to dig wild yams, and catch crabs for the voyage ; whilst the old men busied themselves about the canoes and other matters requiring more skill and experience. Eitova's warriors were all able-bodied men with fine athletic frames, and well armed. A collision with them would have been attended with fatal consequences. They were much ex- asperated at the proposal of the Tonguese to dispose of their relations and friends in the manner detailed, and were quite ready to make a desperate stand against the enemy. Mr. Pritchard thought it advisable to send an official letter to Maafu, informing him that Eitova was about to be restored to his own island, and reminding him that, in accordance with the document signed, an attack on the life and property of any Fijian would not be permitted. All being ready for starting, on the 26th of October sails were set. The schooner ' Paul Jones ' had to go outside the reef encircling the eastern shores of Vanua Levu, whilst the canoes, not drawing so much water, were able to avail themselves of the advantage of going inside. Toward sunset of the following day, Naduri was reached, where Bete, the chief placed n in possession of Eitova's estates by Maafu, resided. To prevent future complications it was necessary to come to some arrange- ment with him, and a message was dispatched to request his attendance on board. Contrary to expectation, he refused to attend, but was ready to see us on shore. As this would have been a concession implying weakness, a message was sent to the principal landholders (Mata ni vanua) that they might come to receive a communica- CHIEF BETE. 261 tion intended for the whole community. This measure had the desired effect. Finding that the landholders were going on board, and act independently of him, Bete deemed it prudent to change his mind, and he soon after stepped on board. Long ere this the sun had set, but the moon made every object distinctly visible. Bete was accompanied by the Tonguese teacher of his town, and his principal spokesman, who, however, hardly uttered a word during the whole interview. Having shaken hands all round, the chief was asked to sit down on deck, and all of us did the same. A Fijian chief is generally a fine man physically, considerably taller than his subjects, and pos- sessing that commanding air which shows that he feels himself a chief. Bete, though more than the middle height, had nothing imposing in his bearing, and his face portrayed weakness and irresolution of character. Though backed by the whole influence of Maafu, he never acquired any ascendency over the people he was set to govern ; they openly disobeyed his orders ; and foreigners found it useless to enter into any arrangement with him about the revival of the beche-de-mer trade, as he had not power sufficient to compel the necessary number of people to procure a shipload full of that valuable article. When younger, he had been guilty of murdering a white man of the name of Cunningham, who had a handsome wife from Kotuma, whom his father afterwards added to his harem. Nor had vessels going near his place been always safe : a few years ago the ' Paul Jones ' and another little schooner, the ' Gla- diator,' with British subjects on board, were fired into, 262 A MISSION TO VITI. and obliged to leave so inhospitable a neighbourhood with all possible speed. Ritova, on the other hand, is the exact contrast of Bete. He is a tall, well-made man, with intelligent features ; every inch a chief. Both his mother and grandmother were the great Macu- ata Queens, which gave him an advantage over Bete, whose mother was a degree below them in birth. All over Fiji the rank of the mother is of importance in regulating that of her offspring, but in Macuata a still greater stress is laid upon this circumstance than else- where ; hence, after Bete's father died, the office of Tui Macuata, or King of Macuata, vacant by his death, was offered by the landholders to Bitova as the highest chief. However, he waived his claims in favour of his son, who accordingly was duly elected, and invested with the title. After Ritova had been driven away, Maafu made Bete King of Macuata ; hence there were two claimants to that dignity. In his dealings with the white men, Ritova always behaved creditably. Traders left large stocks of goods in his hand, taking no other security for their payment than his reputation for ho- nesty, and that at a time when nearly the whole of Fiji was addicted to cannibalism, and the lives of foreigners trembled in the balance. In the complicated process of collecting and curing beche-de-mer, Ritova displayed as much energy in making his people work as he did ho- nesty in the pecuniary transactions which it involved. The benefits arising from the beche-de-mer trade were felt on all hands, and when, with Ritova's removal, this lucrative traffic came to an end, even the most humble became mindful that they had not simply experienced a RITOVA. 263 change of masters. What impressed me most favour- ably with Bitova was, that I once caught him, with his hands at his back, walking up and down in silent medi- tation behind his house, and on inquiry I found that such was his usual habit. Amongst Europeans this may be nothing uncommon, but amongst Fijians, or Polyne- sians in general, it is worth recording. Mr. Pritchard opened proceedings by expressing re- gret that Bete had not visited Cakaudrove, where his opinion might have influenced the result arrived at re- garding Macuata affairs. He then told him that, having refused his council, it had been settled without him that Bitova should return to Nukubati, and enjoy the undis- puted rights of his patrimonial estates. Bitova was now called, and though the two chiefs had for many a long year been neighbours, separated by a few miles, they now, for the first time in their lives, shook hands with each other : interested parties on both sides had alwrays kept up a state of enmity between them. Bete, ad- dressed as Tui (King of) Macuata, according to a pre- vious arrangement with Bitova, was asked to express his views on the subject; but he at once begged that Bitova might take precedence, calling him the "Vunivalu,'1 the highest title he could apply. Bitova expressed his desire to live in peace on his lands, to devote his ener- gies to the development of agriculture and trade ; hoping, at the same time, that all old feuds might be consigned to oblivion. Bete echoed the same sentiments, and had no objection to sign a document to that effect, in which the two chiefs pledged themselves not to attack each other, or set on foot any measure or intrigue that might be at- 264 A MISSION TO VITI. tended with evil consequences to either party ; to refer all matters of dispute between them to H.B.M. Consul, to disavow all allegiance or dependence on Maafu, and to suffer punishment, even to the loss of their chieftain- ship, in case of non-compliance with any article of the convention. A document of this nature was accordingly drawn up, ably translated by the consular interpreter, Mr. Charles Wise, signed by the two chiefs, and wit- nessed by Mr. Pritchard, the Tonguese teacher, the in- terpreter, and myself. Early the next morning we made for Nukubati. This island, scarcely a mile in circumference, still bore ample traces of the mode of warfare carried on by the Ton- guese. All the houses had been destroyed by fire, with the exception of one, the temporary residence of Maafu during the fight. The trunks of most of the cocoa-nut palms were charred by the conflagration that had con- sumed the town; nearly all the other fruit-trees had been cut down, and hundreds of cocoa-nut trunks felled, to make a high stockade, dividing the island into two sec- tions, and serving as a breastwork, impenetrable to bul- lets. The wells had been filled up with rocks, logs, and rubbish ; in fine, every damage that could possibly be conceived to change a flourishing town and a fruitful island into a wilderness, had been done. Quite recently a few settlers had collected on Nukubati, busily engaged in re-establishing the plantations and erecting houses. Hardly had we dropped anchor when a deputation from the island, headed by the local chief, waited upon Ritova. They brought with them presents of wild yams, ready cooked, and carried on a tray of cocoa-nut A TONGUESE TEACHER. 265 leaves. The local chief, a man somewhat advanced in years, and of rather venerable aspect, came to shake hands with Ritova ; whilst his followers kept at a re- spectful distance, and none of them ventured to stand upright as long as they were on board. This old man had been one of Ritova's most faithful friends, having shared his exile for some time. The two friends were quite overcome, and ready to cry. None of them could speak for some minutes ; at last the old chief said, that he was sorry to have to come empty-handed, but they were so poor that they had nothing to give. Ritova replied, that to be able to look once more upon his dear old face was more than all the presents he could have brought ; they would apply themselves manfully to rebuild their towns, and the intercourse with the white men would soon place them in possession of plenty of goods. They then went on shore, where the people were overjoyed to behold their great chief again. The Tonguese teacher of Naduri had been invited by us to preach that day at Nukubati, for which we made him a handsome present ; and all hands went on shore to attend Divine service, which, in the absence of a pro- per place of worship, was held in the chief's house. Instead of dwelling on the importance of the happy result that had been brought about by the arrangement just concluded, and thanking God that peace had been preserved in the land, the teacher preached a pointed sermon at Ritova, about the evils that jealousy had pro- duced in Tonga, — Tonga is always put first by these conceited islanders, — Europe, and Fiji. Seeing several 266 A MISSION TO VITI. Roman Catholics present, he dwelt on the errors of their dogmas, and abused the Virgin and the Saints in un- measured terms. It would have been hardly possible to preach a more impracticable sermon, or exhibit worse taste or less discretion. Ritova, on pointing out the site for a church, begged the Consul to write to the head- quarters of the missionaries about sending him Chris- tian teachers ; but, if possible, not a Tonguese or a man of extreme sectarian views, who, by widening the breach between Roman Catholics and Protestants, might endan- ger the peace, whilst a man of moderate views would have little difficulty in making the whole population of one way of thinking on religious subjects. He after- wards recurred to this topic when he saw me again, say- ing— though of course using different language — that the ethical part of Christianity, that which was the basis of both denominations, had a deep interest to him, but that he attached little value to mere dogmas. This was a proof to me that this man had thought much more deeply on religion than he had received credit for. When lonely pacing up and down the trodden path behind his hut, he had evidently sought to arrive at some solution respecting the cbnflicting views rival denominations pre- sented to him. One of Ritova's large canoes had come along with us, but all the others had not made their appearance the second day after our arrival. Some uneasiness being felt lest the Tonguese had captured them, heavy laden as they were with passengers, goods, and live stock, a messenger was dispatched to the island of Kia, who returned with two other canoes, having Ritova's son (Tui Macuata) on DEPARTURE .FROM NUKUBATI. 267 board. They had not thought it possible that affairs with Bete could be arranged amicably, and therefore had not come direct. When Bitova's son soon aftej: stepped on shore, he could scarcely believe that he was actually treading on his native isle. " Is this really the sand of NukubatH" he exclaimed; " really my home 1 Yes, it is, thanks to the Consul." His companions felt equally grateful, but gratitude in the Fijian always seeks ex- pression in gifts, and their greatest sorrow was that they had nothing to give ; even Ritova was uneasy on this point. If any brother-chief had effected his resto- ration, custom would have demanded that Eitova should collect all the goods he could by the twelvemonth, or later, invite his allies to a great festival, and publicly, with an appropriate speech, hand the presents over to them. The Consul explained in unmistakeable language that all he asked in return for what had been done, was the resumption of Ritova's former activity in trading with the white men, and the same friendly treatment of his customers he had invariably bestowed upon them when chief ruler of Macuata. On the 30th of October a schooner arrived from Ova- lau with dispatches, urgently calling Mr. Prit chard's attention to another part of the group. Going on shore to wish Ritova good-bye, we met deputations delivering addresses from towns which had heard of his return, and sent whales' teeth and other acceptable presents in proof of their devotion. When we returned on board, the large triangular sails of the missing canoes appeared on the horizon : all Ritova's little property was safe. We fired a salute by way of farewell, and hoisting all 268 A MISSION TO VITL canvas, soon lost sight of Nukubati and its young com- munity.* Macua,ta now began to revive. Eitova eagerly set about rebuilding his town on Nukubati, and white traders again nocked to the coast, as in days of yore. This turn of affairs was far from pleasing to the Ton- guese ; they were indefatigable in promoting discontent and disturbance, and scarcely had Ritova's town been re- built than the Tonguese burned it down again. Bete, Maafu's willing tool, could not resist the temptation of playing once more the traitor. Under the pretext of making a durable peace, he coaxed Eitova over to Naduri, where he had arranged with a party of moun- taineers to rush into the town and club Eitova and his family. Eitova went into the trap : fortunately his son heard of the scheme, and reported it to his father. Ei- tova went off in one of his canoes, professedly to drink kava, in reality to hold a council with his old men ; whilst the son remained on shore to lull suspicion. Bete, in order to bring Eitova on shore, invited him to a bowl of kava ; and the son, seeing the moment had arrived when all were to be massacred, told his father their imminent peril. They were all in Bete's power : what were they to do ? The son urged the necessity of assuming the offensive, and killing Bete without delay ; Eitova hesitated, but the young fellow went ashore, met Bete just in front of his house, charged him with the * It is only up to this date that I can speak from personal experience of the events that occurred ; what follows has been derived from a com- munication in the ' Athenaeum,' from private letters, and from Commodore Seymour's and other dispatches published in the ' Fijian Blue-book.' BETE'S DEATH. 269 diabolical plot he had laid, and that had his father not followed the Consul's advice to act honestly, he would never have been in his power. " I have three balls in my musket for you, Bete ;" he said, " you, who want to kill my father, his son, and all his people, in cold blood." With these words he fired, and two balls lodged in Bete's body ; he died instantly. A great uproar followed ; some of Ritova's friends, and they were numerous, voted for killing all Bete's followers and razing the town. Ritova, who had all the while been on board his canoes, rushed on shore, quelled the excitement by his presence, and harangued the crowd. " People of Naduri," he said, "you who deserted me, your proper chief, when the Tonguese drove him from the land of his forefathers, you may all live ! Were it not for my solemn promises to the British Consul, you would all die this day with the man you followed ; he has told me to spare my ene- mies, therefore, be pardoned ; keep quiet ; I will send for Christian teachers — not Tonguese — European or Fijian, and we will all endeavour to live in peace, and cultivate agriculture and trade." * Everything was going on quietly again when Maafu dispatched his lieutenant, Wai-ni-golo, to Macuata, and troubles at once recommenced. The very excellence of this, the finest district in Fiji, makes these artful and bold Tonguese crave after it so much. Fortunately, about the middle of July, 1861, Commodore Seymour, in H.B.M.S. Pelorus, arrived at Ovalau, and extracts from his dispatch shall carry on the story. * ' Athenaeum,' No. 1791, p. 261. — Also private letters from residents in Fiji. 270 A MISSION TO VITI. " Her Majesty's ship, under my command, sailed from Coro- mandel harbour, east coast of New Zealand, on the 8th July, and arrived at Levuka harbour, island of Ovalau, on the 15th, after a favourable passage made under sail. Having been informed by Mr. Pritchard that the trade in beche-de-mer on the north- west coast of Vanua Levu was entirely stopped in consequence of a war which was being carried on there between two rival chiefs, one of whom was supported by a body of Tongans, whose usual residence is on Lakeba, one of the windward is- lands, I decided on endeavouring to put a stop to a state of affairs so prejudicial to British interests ; and in order that my measures should be backed by the highest native authority in Fiji, I requested Mr. Pritchard to propose to Cakobau and Maafu to accompany me to the Macuata district in the ' Pelorus.' This, after a little diplomatic shuffling, they consented to do; and having received them, Mr. Pritchard, and the consular in- terpreter, on board, we left Levuka on the morning of the 18th, entering the great reef which encircles Vanua Levu by a pass a little to the northward of the Nadi passage, after which our course lay through a very intricate channel formed by sunken reefs and patches, of which no regular survey exists, but through which we were piloted in the most able manner by one of the English residents afc Ovalau (Christopher Carr), the owner of a small beche-de-mer trader. Under his direction we reached anchorage off Levuta, about twenty miles from our desti- nation, Macuata, that evening; and the following morning, having weighed as soon as the sun was sufficiently high to enable us to distinguish the shoals, we anchored in Naduri Harbour, Macuata Bay, about 1500 yards from where some houses were visible on the beach. ff On sending on shore to ascertain the state of affairs, we found, as I had anticipated would be the case, that the com- bined force of the Tongans and Fijians had driven their oppo- nents off the mainland, and that the latter had taken refuge on Kia Island, about ten miles from our anchorage. Since their expulsion their enemies had committed great havoc amongst their plantations, had destroyed nearly all the large canoes, COMMODORE SEYMOUR'S VISIT. 271 for which this district was formerly famous, and almost daily put one or more persons to death, whose only crime was being related to the vanquished party. In these outrages the Ton- gans were the most prominent actors ; and I may here state my opinion, that in the event of her Majesty 's Government accept- ing the Fijis, it will be necessary, from the very first, to put a stop to the raids which the Tongans have for the last five years been in the habit of carrying into the various islands lying to the west of Lakeba. " On the morning of the 20th I sent over to the island of Kia for Ritova, the chief of the tribe which had been driven out of Macuata, and in the afternoon he came on board in a cutter of the ' Pelorus/ followed by fifteen canoes filled with his retainers. After he had had an hour's conversation withCakobau and Maafu, we made a preconcerted signal, on seeing which Wai-ni-golo, Maafu' s lieutenant, and two Fijian chiefs, came on board ; and after they and their opponents had discussed matters for an hour, I told them, through the consular interpreter, that we had no wish to injure or interfere with either the Fijians or Tongans in any way ; but that, owing to the senseless quarrels of the former, fomented by the latter, the interests of the white traders in Fiji were compromised, and that I was determined on putting a stop to a state of affairs which was equally prejudicial to their own and to British interests. I should therefore leave them to settle, by what means they could arrange, matters amongst themselves, and any advice I could give them was at their service. My observations were listened to with attention by both parties of Fijians, but were evidently unsatisfactory to the Tongan chief, who, throughout the entire business, was less manageable than either his associates or his enemies. " The discussion, which terminated at sunset, was renewed the next day, when the following terms were agreed to by the chiefs of Fiji and Tonga present, being those which, with Mr. Pritchard's concurrence, I had decided from the first on seeing carried out : — ' ' Between Rifova and Bonaveidogo, chiefs of Fiji. " 1st. To forget all past grievances and causes of quarrel. 272 A MISSION TO VITI. " 2nd. To commence from this date an era of peace and friendship. " 3rd. To receive and protect the teachers of the Christian religion. " 4th. To encourage trade and commerce throughout the Macuata ter- ritories, and to protect all legitimate traders and settlers. " 5th. To dissolve all political connection, and to confine themselves to legitimate and friendly intercourse with the Tongans. " Between Ritova and other chiefs of Fiji and Maafu, chief of Tonga. " 1st. That Wai-ni-golo shall, within fourteen hours, retire for ever from the Macuata territories, and shall not again appear within the line of country from Nacewa Bay on the one side, to Bua Bay on the other. " 2nd. That no Tongans shall visit the Macuata territories, or appear within the above-named limits, for twelve months from this date. " 3rd. That Tongans in the service of the Wesleyan or other missions are exempted from the above restrictions. " 4th. That if any of the above articles are infringed, Maafu agrees that Wai-ni-golo shall be sent from Fiji to his native country. " The three last articles were inserted in the treaty at my re- commendation, as I foresaw that if the Tongans were allowed to remain on the Vanua Levu, any good effect which might otherwise result from our visit would be completely done away with ; and in compliance with them at dawn on the morning of the 22nd of July, the two large double canoes, in which Wai- ni-golo and his followers had come to Macuata, were launched, and by eight A.M. were under weigh, with a strong and fair wind, for Lakeba ; a more picturesque scene than their depar- ture, as they crossed the ' Pelorus's ' bow, beating their drums and cheering most lustily, I have seldom witnessed. In the course of the same day Cakobau and Maafu quitted the ship, and sailed for Levuka in Cakobau's large canoe, and in the afternoon I landed at Macuata, accompanied by Ritova, and saw him and many of his people re-established in their former habitations. " Having thus seen tranquillity re-established in Vanua Levu, I quitted Macuata on the morning of the 23rd July, having Kitova and two of his retainers on board, they being desirous of seeing the working of the engines ; and on getting clear of the Mali passage we discharged them and Mr. Pritchard to the TERMINATION OF THE TONGUESE WARS. 273 latter* s schooner, after which we made sail, by noon were clear of Kia Island, and steering a course for Aneiteum." * Commodore Seymour's visit thus proved of material benefit to Fiji, and was felt as such on all hands. " I am directed by Earl Russell to request," writes Mr. James Murray, of the Foreign Office, to Sir T. Rogers, Bart., December 31, 1861, "that you will state to the Duke of Newcastle, that his Lordship has learnt with satisfaction the steps taken by Commodore Seymour for terminating the wars which have been raging between the Tongans and Fijians." * It will be seen how closely this statement agrees with the more con- densed account in the ' Athenaeum ' of February 22, 1862. 274 CHAPTEE XVI. GENERAL REMARKS ON THE ASPECT, CLIMATE, SOIL, AND VEGETATION OF FIJI. COLONIAL PRODUCE. STAPLE FOOD. EDIBLE ROOTS. KITCHEN VEGETABLES. — EDIBLE FRUITS. — NATIONAL BEVERAGES. — KAVA. VITI, or Fiji, is an archipelago in the South Pacific Ocean, midway between the Tongan islands and the French colony of New Caledonia, having, according to Dr. Petermann's recent calculations, a superficial area equal to that of Wales, or eight times that of the Ionian Islands. The exact number of islands and islets com- prising it is merely approximately known, only a partial hydrographical survey of the whole group having as yet been made ; 230 would probably be rather below than above the number. Viti Levu, Kadavu, Vanua Levu, and Taviuni, are of primary, Kabe, Koro, Gau, and Ova- lau, of secondary, magnitude. Situated between lati- tudes 19° 47' S. and 15° 47' S., and longitudes 180° 8' W. and 176°50/E., the climate is tropical, but the heat is moderated, in the winter season by the south-east, in the summer by the north-east trade-wind. 62° Fahr. is the lowest temperature observed in Lakeba by Mr. Wil- liams, in Kadavu by Mr. Royce ; but, though the mean temperature of the whole group may be stated to be 80° Fahr., the thermometer has been known to rise to CLIMATE, SOIL, AND FLORA. 275 121° Fahr. The country is remarkably free from fever, — that curse of the Samoan group, — and the only dis- ease Fijiansand Europeans have reason to fear is dysen- tery, unknown, if a current belief may be relied upon, before the visits of foreigners to these shores, and hence often termed " the white man's disease " by the natives. The time from October till April is the hottest, that extending over the other months the coolest, part of the year. It is during the former when the most rain falls, but the dry and rainy seasons do not strictly correspond with this division, nor is the difference between the wet and dry very marked. There are occasional showers during the so-called dry season in all parts of the group, and in localities like the Straits of Somosomo they may even be termed frequent. The fine weather is expected to set in about May. June, July, August, September, and October, are generally dry, and from their low tem- perature looked forward to by European settlers. How many inches of rain annually fall has not been ascer- tained ; nor would a gauge kept in a single locality only give a fair approximate result of the average amount, since the difference of the meteorological conditions ex isting between the leeward and windward islands, the lee side and the weather side of the larger islands, are too great.* Speaking generally, the Vitian islands may be said to * A gauge, kept by tlie Rev. Mr. Whitley (probably at Levuka, B.S.), showed that ninety inches of rain had fallen in six months, and four in the night of February 12th, 1860. This statement I find in an obscure publication, the ' Primitive Methodist Juvenile Magazine,' London, 1862, rol. xi. p. 50. Not having seen it confirmed, it may possibly be incorrect, like several others in the article from which it is taken. T 2 276 A MISSION TO VITI. owe their origin to volcanic upheavings and the busy operation of corals. There are at present no active vol- canos, but several of the highest mountains, for in- stance, Buke Levu, in Kadavu, and the summit of Tavi- uni, must in times gone by have been formidable craters. Hot springs are met with in different parts, earthquakes are occasionally experienced, and between Fiji and Tonga a whole island has of late years been lifted above the level of the ocean, whilst masses of pumice-stone are drifted on the southern shores of Kadavu and Viti Levu ; all showing that Fiji, though not the focus of volcanic action, is not secure against plutonic dis- turbances and their effects. The deltas and alluvial de- posits of the great rivers excepted, there is little level land. Most of the ground is undulated, all the larger islands are hilly, and the largest have peaks 4000 feet high ; Voma, in Viti Levu, and Buke Levu, in Kadavu (both of whichwere ascended by me), being the most elevated. The soil consists in many parts of a dark-red or yellowish clay, or decomposed volcanic rock, which soon becomes dry, but being plentifully supplied with water, proves very productive. There is hardly a rod of land that might not be converted into pasture or be cultivated. Almost at every step one discovers that most of the land has at one time or other produced some crop. Though on the weather side dense and ex- tensive woods exist, few of them can be regarded as virgin forests, most having re-established themselves after the plantations once occupying their site had been abandoned. Kadavu does not appear to have an acre of virgin forest beyond what is clustered around the very CLIMATE, SOIL, AND FLOKA. 277 summit of Buke Levu. The re-establishment of the woods on ground at one time under cultivation can scarcely be adduced as a proof that the population has seriously diminished, but rather that the Fijians have for ages followed the same system of agriculture as they do at present, that of constantly selecting new spots for their crops when the old ones, which their ignorance prevents them from fertilizing by the introduction of manure, become exhausted. The displaced vegetation quickly resumes its former sway, until perhaps, after the lapse of years, it has once more to make room for cul- tivated plants. The aspect of the weather side of the islands is essen- tially different from that of the lee side. The former teems with a dense mass of vegetation, huge trees, in- -/ numerable creepers, and epiphytical plants. Hardly ever a break occurs in the green mantle spread over hill and dale, except where effected by artificial means, r/ Kain and moisture are plentiful, adding ever fresh s* vigour to, and keeping up the exuberant growth of, trees, shrubs, and herbs. Far different is the aspect of the lee side. Instead of the dense jungle, interlaced with creepers and loaded with epiphytes, a fine grassy country, here and there dotted with screw-pines, pre- sents itself. The northern shores of Viti Levu and Vanua Levu bear this character in an eminent degree, and their very aspect is proof that rain falls in only limited quantity ; the high ridge of mountains, which form, as it were, the backbone of the two largest islands, intercept- ing many showers, but sending down perpetual streams to fertilize the low lands of the coast. The lee side would 278 A MISSION TO VITI. therefore more readily recommend itself to the white settler, as it requires hardly any clearing, and would be immediately available for cattle-breeding and cotton- growing. The coast-line of most of the islands is enriched by a dense, more or less broken, belt of cocoa-nut palms. White beaches, formed of decomposed corals, may be traced for miles ; whilst good soil in many instances ex- tends quite to the water's edge, and trees, not numbering amongst the strictly littoral vegetation, overhang the sea. Mangrove swamps are limited, and chiefly confined to the mouths of the rivers; hence the almost total freedom of the country from malignant fevers. In the windward islands, Lakeba and its dependencies, the wreeping iron-wood (Casuarina equisetifolia, Forst.), in- termingled with screw-pines (Pandanus odoratissimus, Linn.), abounds, and considerable tracts of country are covered with the common brake and other hard-leaved ferns: they prefer an open country, and have taken possession where little else will grow. Wherever these forms of vegetation occur on the weather side of the group, the soil may be expected to be rather poor. It would, however, be erroneous to apply the same rule to the leeward side, where they are also tolerably abun- dant, not because the soil is too poor to support a dense herbaceous or woody vegetation, but because the air is destitute of that excessive moisture, and the country less visited by numerous showers of rain, promoting the luxuriant growth on the weather side. The general physiognomy of the flora is decidedly tropical ; tree-ferns, branching grasses, six or seven dif- CLIMATE, SOIL, AND FLORA. 279 ferent kind of palms, Scitamineous plants, epiphytical orchids, ferns, and pepperworts, fully accounting for this fact. Whole districts, however, possess a strictly South Australian look, owing to the presence of two phyllodineous Acacias (A. laurifolia^ Willd., and A. Richei, A. Gray), two Casuarinas, several kinds of Me- trosideros, with either scarlet or yellow blossoms, a climbing Eubus, Smilax, and Geitonoplesiwn * and Fla- gellaria, as well as the peculiar habit of various other species. There is little change in the nature of the vegetation until one reaches about 2000 feet elevation, where the plants peculiar to the coast region are re- placed by mountain forms. Hollies, Myrtaceous, Mela- stomaceous, and Laurinaceous trees, Epacridaceous and Vacciniaceous bushes, forming the bulk ; scarlet orchids, astelias, delicate ferns, mosses, and lichens, crowding their branches. None of the explored peaks have as yet disclosed any genuine alpine vegetation, — perennial herbs forming csespitose masses and prostrate shrubs, ge- nerally bearing large and gay-coloured flowers. Should it ever be met wdth, there would indeed be a rich bota- nical harvest. Nature has been truly bountiful in distributing her vegetable treasures to these islands ; but perhaps the best proof of their extreme fertility and matchless re- sources is less furnished by the fact that a country with a population of at least 200,000 souls, constantly sup- plying provisions to foreign vessels, having an immense * The natives term this plant Wa Dakua, from Wa, creeper, and Dakua, Kowrie pine, because its leaves closely resemble those of the Fijian Dammar a. 280 A MISSION TO VITI. number of cocoa-nuts withdrawn from consumption by a primitive and wasteful method of making oil for ex- portation, and cultivating, comparatively speaking, only a few acres of ground, than by the almost endless series of vegetable productions — an enumeration of which forms the subject of the succeeding pages. Colonial produce, properly so called, such as sugar, coffee, tamarinds, and tobacco, may be expected from Fiji in considerable quantities, as soon as Europeans shall have devoted their attention to the subject ; since the plants yielding them, long ago introduced, flourish so well, that a j udicious outlay of capital might prove a profitable investment. The sugar-cane (Saccharum offi- cinarum. Linn.), called Dovu in Fijian, grows, as it were, wild in various parts of the group, and a purple variety, attaining sixteen feet high and a corresponding thick- ness, is cultivated to some extent. No foreigners have as yet set up mills, nor are the natives at present ac- quainted with the process of making sugar ; they merely chew the cane, and employ the juice for sweetening their puddings. In the greater part of the group the leaves are used for thatching the roofs of houses ; it is only in Lakeba and others of the eastern islands where those of a screw-pine (Pandanus odoratissimus. Linn.) are preferred, whilst those of the Boreti (Acrosticlmm aureum, Linn.), a common seaside fern, are still less frequently used, though in the central islands they, in common with those of the Makita (Parinarium laurinum, A. Gray)> supply the chief materials for covering the side walls of houses, churches, and temples. Coffee (Coffea arabica, Linn.) will one day rank amongst the COLONIAL PRODUCE. 281 staple products of the country; the mountain slopes of the larger islands, especially those of Viti Levu, Vanua Levu, and Kadavu, and, above all, those of the valley of Namosi, seeming well adapted for its growth. Several old coffee-trees are to be found in the Rewa district, showing the plant to be not of recent introduction. Dr. Brower, American Consul, has established a plan- tation on his estate at Wakaya, which gives fair pro- mise ; and Mr. Binner, of Levuka, has in his garden a number of thriving seedlings. The tamarind (Tamarin- dus Indica, Linn.) was introduced about eighteen years ago ; and there is a fine tree, thirty feet high, and of corresponding dimensions, on the Somosomo estate of Captain Wilson and M. Joubert, of Sydney. Tobacco (Nicotiana Tabacum, Linn.), a pink-flowering kind, is grown about towns and villages in patches, never exceeding a few rods in extent, but in sufficient quantity to keep the bulk of the population sup- plied. Both men and women use it for smoking only, either out of pipes or made into cigarettes with dry banana-leaves"; the filthy habit of chewing or taking snuff does not seem to be practised by them, though, had they been so inclined, they might have learned it from the lower class of white settlers. Being unac- quainted with the process of curing the leaf successfully, the natives greatly prefer our tobacco to their own, and are thankful for the gift of a piece, however small, but rather loth to regard it in the light of payment for goods or services rendered, preferring any other article of barter, inferior though it may be in value to the to- bacco offered. 282 A MISSION TO VITI. Oil and vegetable fat next claim our attention. The most valuable oil produced in Fiji is that extracted from the seeds of the Dilo (Calopliyllum inophyllum, Linn.), the Tamanu of Eastern Polynesia, and the Cashumpa of India. It is the bitter oil, or woondel, of Indian com- merce. The natives use it for polishing arms and greas- ing their bodies when cocoa-nut oil is not at hand. But the great reputation this oil enjoys throughout Poly- nesia and the East Indies rests upon its medicinal pro- perties, as a liniment in rheumatism, pains in the joints, and bruises. The efficacy in that respect can hardly be exaggerated, and recommends it to the attention of Eu- ropean practitioners. The oil is kept by the natives in gourd flasks, and, there being only a limited quantity made, I was charged about sixpence per pint for it, paid in calico and cutlery. The tree yielding it is one of the most common littoral plants in the group, and its round fruits, mixed with the square-shaped ones of Bar- ringtonia speciosa, the pine-cone-like ones of the sago- palm, and the flat seeds of the Walai (Entada scandens, Bth.), are found densely covering the sandy beaches, a play of the tides. Dilo oil never congeals in the lowest temperature of the Fijis, as cocoa-nut oil often does during the cool season. It is of a greenish tinge, and a very little of it will impart its hue to a whole cask of cocoa-nut oil. Its commercial value is only partially known in the Fijis, and was found out accidentally. Amongst the contributions in cocoa-nut oil which the natives furnish towards the support of the Wesleyan missions, some Dilo oil had been poured, which, on ar- riving at Sydney, was rejected by the broker who pur- OILS AND VEGETABLE FAT. 283 chased the other oil, on account of its greenish tinge and strange appearance. On being shown to others, a chemist, recognizing it as the bitter oil of India, pur- chased it at the rate of £60 per tun; and he must have made a good profit on it, as the article fetches as much as £90 per tun. The Dilo grows to the height of sixty feet, and the stem is from three to four feet in diameter, generally thickly crowded with epiphytal orchids and ferns. The dark oblong leaves form a magnificent crown, producing a dense shade ; and wrhen, during the flower- ing season, they are interspersed with numerous white flowers, the aspect of the whole tree is truly noble. The exudation from the stem is, according to Bennett, the Tacamahaca resin of commerce, used by Tahitians as a scent. Carpenters and cabinet-makers value the wood on account of its beautiful grain, hardness, and red tinge. Boats and canoes are built of it, and it is named with the Yes.(^22^A- Gray) as the best timber produced in Fiji. In order to extract the oil, the round fruit is allowed to drop and the outer fleshy covering rot on the ground. The remaining por- tion, consisting of a shell somewhat of the consistency of that of a hen's egg, and enclosing the kernel, is baked on hot stones, in the same way that Polynesian vegeta- bles and meat are. The shell is then broken, and the kernel pounded between stones. If the quantity be small, the macerated mass is placed in the fibres of the Vau (Paritium tiliaceum and tricuspis\ and forced by the hand to yield up its oily contents ; if large, a rude level press is constructed by placing a boom horizontally between two cocoa-nut trees, and appending to them per- 284 A MISSION TO VITI. pendicularly the fibres of the Vau. After the macerated kernels have been placed in the midst, a pole made fast to the lower end of the fibres, and two men taking hold of its end, twist the contrivance round and round till the oil, collecting into a wooden bowl standing under- neath, has been extracted. Of course, the pressure thus brought to bear upon the pounded kernels is not suffi- ciently great to allow every particle of oil to escape, and with the proper machinery the waste would amount to little indeed. The candle-nut (Aleurites triloba, Forst.), termed " Lauci," " Sikeci," and " Tuitui," in the various dialects of Fiji, contains a great deal of oil, of which, however, the natives make only a limited use for polishing, though in other parts of Polynesia lamps are fed with it, and in the Hawaiian islands the entire kernels are strung on a stick and lighted as candles. The fruit is better known as a dye, and plays an important part at the birth of a child; for no sooner is a baby born than the mid- wife rushes to the Lauci to gather a fruit fresh from the tree, which she places in the mouth of the interesting young stranger, with the conviction that its milky juice will clear the throat, and more effectually enable it to announce its welcome arrival. Mr. Wilson, the manag- ing director of Price's Patent Candle Company, at Vaux- hall, writes to me : — " The oil of the Aleurites triloba is fine and hard, worth at least as much as sesame or rape oil, in this market. It is held very lightly in its matrix, and should be pressed where grown. If the ' nuts ' were brought home in their shells, the freight would be ex- pensive ; and if shelled, insects would eat them." The OILS AND VEGETABLE FAT. 285 candle-nut tree is of middle size, common throughout Fiji, and rendered a conspicuous object by the whiteness of its leaves, produced by a fine powder easily removed. The ground underneath is always densely covered with " nuts," and large quantities might be collected. The cro ton-oil plant (Curcas purgans, Med.), intro- duced from the Tongan islands, is employed for living fences in Lakeba and other parts ; but the oleaceous pro- perties of its seeds have as yet been turned to as little account as those of the castor-oil plant (Ritinus commu- nis. Linn.), named " Uto ni papalagi " by the natives, and naturalized throughout the group. The oil of the cocoa-nut palm, or Niu dina (Cocos nucifera. Linn.), has long been one of the articles of ex- port ; nevertheless, it is difficult to arrive at any definite result about the average annual quantity. The Wesleyan mission, in negotiating with an island trader for the trans- port of the oil received from the natives as contribu- tions to its funds, were ready to guarantee that at least sixty tuns should pass through his hands. This, at the rate of £20 per tun, the average value of the oil on the spot, would give £1200 per annum — a sum tolerably well agreeing with that usually advertised on the wrapper of the ' Wesleyan Missionary Notices ' as the Fijian share towards the support of the Society. Exact data for forming an opinion of the quantity shipped by the ac- tual traders are altogether wanting. On consulting with several about this subject, they pretty nearly all agreed in fixing three hundred tuns as the utmost limit of the annual export of the whole group, = £6000 on the spot. Hitherto, there has been great waste in the making of 286 A MISSION TO VITI. oil, the native process being of a primitive description. To remedy this evil, Captain Wilson and M. Joubert, of Sydney, have set up proper machinery on their estate at Somosomo, after one of the partners had familiarized himself with the latest improvement in that branch of industry in Ceylon ; and it is their intention to take ad- vantage of the luxuriant manner in which Coboi, or lemon-grass (Andropogon Schoenanthus, Linn.), grows in Fiji, by cultivating it for the purpose of making citro- nella oil. Cocoa-nut oil congealing at a temperature of about 72° Fahr., and the thermometer during the cool months often falling below that degree, a proper amount of warmth will be kept up whilst the operation of press- ing the pulverized kernels is going on, and thus another step be taken towards the making of the largest quan- tity of oil from the least number of nuts. Wilkes, upon the authority of one of the scientific men attached to his expedition, states that there were only two varieties of cocoa-nut, a green and a brown. Closer attention to the subject would have shown this to be a mistake ; not only the colour, but also the average size and shape of the fruits, the height of the trees, and the insertion of the leaflets, or rather segments, offer marks of distinc- tion between the numerous varieties with which the is- lands are studded. The most striking kind is the one having fruits not much larger than a turkey's egg, and bearing more than a hundred of them in each bunch. Several trees were noticed at Kadavu. about Yarabale, a narrow isthmus, where canoes are dragged across from sea to sea. The curious phenomenon of a cocoa-nut palm becoming, as it were, branched by the division of OILS AND VEGETABLE FAT. 287 the trunk, has occasionally been witnessed in Fiji ; and two interesting instances of it are given in Williams's ' Fiji and the Fijians,' where one of the trees is described with five branches. In Samoa Mr. W. Pritchard saw a tree with two heads, regarded with just pride by the natives who possessed it, and cut down during a war by their enemies. As in other parts of Polynesia, the trunk is made into small canoes, or supplies materials for building and fencing ; stockades of it are impenetrable to bullets. The leaves are made into different kinds of mats and baskets ; yam houses are occasionally thatched with them, but these roofs do not last much longer than a year. The spathe enclosing the flowers is used for torches; the fibres surrounding the nut are made into " sinnet," used for fastenings of all kinds. The young flesh is delicious eating, and the "water" con- tained in the nuts a refreshing drink, which, as the fruit advances, undergoes a gradual change, for all of which there are distinctive names. New-comers soon fix upon a certain stage most agreeable to their palate, and on indicating it to the natives they will readily pick it out by knocking with their fingers on the outside of either the husked or the unhusked nut, and be guided by the sound. This process requires long practice, and though I tried hard to learn at least the sound of that stage I preferred, I did not succeed in accomplishing it. The ripe nuts are grated and used for puddings, or given to fowls and pigs. Some persons have a predilection for nuts when just in the act of germinating — a taste which the Asiatic shares in eating the young palmyras, and the African in consuming the seedlings of the 288 A MISSION TO VITI. Borassus ? jEthiopicum, Mart. It is to be regretted that so few plantations of cocoa-nut trees are formed by white settlers. The annual value of a fruit-producing tree is never less than one dollar ; and how easily might 10,000 nuts be set in the ground, and the value of an estate be permanently raised. Every part of the smaller islands and the sea-borders of the larger are suitable lo- calities. Only Bau, Viwa, and the districts adjacent, form an exception: the trees, as soon as they have* reached a certain height, become diseased ; their leaves look as if dipped in boiling water, and their fruits are few in number, poor, and often drop off before they arrive at maturity ; a thick layer of marl, forming the subsoil of those districts, seeming to oppose that ready drainage the cocoa-nut tree requires, and which it enjoys in so eminent a degree on the white beaches of sand and decomposed corals. Starch is produced by four indigenous plants, viz. Roro (Cycas circinaliS) Linn.), Yabia dina (Tacca pinnatifida, Forst.), Yabia sa (Tacca sativa, Humph.), and Niu soria or Sogo (Sagus Vitiensis, Wendl.), to which of late years has been added the Cassava root of Western America (Manihot Aipi, Pohl), commonly termed by the Fijians " Yabia ni papalagi," i. e. foreign arrowroot. The Roro (Cycas circinalis. Linn.), a tree thirty feet high, is by no means a common plant in the islands, having been encountered only at Viti Levu and Ovalau in isolated specimens ; and as the pith-like substance contained in the trunk was reserved for the sole use of the chiefs, and forbidden to the lower classes, no inducement ex- isted on the part of those debarred from it to extend it STARCH. 289 by cultivation, as is done in the Tongan islands. The two kinds of Yabia are the arrowroot of Fiji, errone- ously stated by Wilkes and others to be the Maranta anmdinacea, Linn. They are both species of Tacca; their foliage springing up in great abundance in the beginning of the warm season, and their tubers ripening about June, when leaves and flowers die off. The most common is that kind termed on the Macuata coast Yabia dina (genuine arrowroot), the Tacca pinnatifida, Forst. It delights in light sandy soil, and is therefore most frequently encountered on the seashore ; whilst the second species, known in Macuata as " Yabia sa," is almost entirely confined to the sides of hills and heavy soil. The natives prefer the first-mentioned spe- cies for the purpose of making arrowroot, though they own that there is no difference in the quality of the farinaceous substance prepared from either. In most parts of Fiji there are no distinctive names for the two kinds, both being called "Yabia;" yet the natives are perfectly well acquainted with their various characters and peculiarities of habitat. The leaf, stalks, and scape of the Yabia sa are prominently speckled, and the seg- ments of the leaves are long and narrow, by which it is at once distinguished from its ally. The tubers, when quite ripe, are dug out of the ground and rasped on the~mush- room coral (Fungia sp.). The fleshy mass thus pro- duced is washed in fresh water to enable the starch to settle at the bottom of the vessel in which the operation is carried on ; by pouring off the dirty water, and re- peated washings, the starchy sediment may be made to assume any desired degree of whiteness. Since Fijian u 290 A MISSION TO VITI. arrowroot has become an article of foreign demand, it has been pointed out to the natives that the impurities imparting a greyish colour to the production, caused partly by not peeling the tubers previous to rasping them, partly by not washing the sediment a sufficient number of times, must be removed in order to raise the marketable value of the article. When a satisfactory degree of whiteness has been attained, the starch is dried in the sun. For their own consumption the Fiji- ans do not dry their arrowroot, but tie it up in bundles of leaves and bury it in the ground, when it speedily ferments, and emits a rather disagreeable odour. South Sea arrowroot fetches from threepence halfpenny to fourpence per pound in London ; and, as it is invaluable when taken in cases of dysentery and diarrhoea, — the bane of the South Seas, — it is necessary to have it genu- ine. The Tonguese have of late years been known to adulterate it to a great extent with lime in order to in- crease its weight and volume, but this fraud may readily be detected by watching the arrowroot when it first comes in contact with water ; if adulterated with lime, it will fizz. Care should also be taken to guard against the starch of the Cassava or Tapioco plant being passed off for Polynesian arrowroot, which, from its slightly purgative tendency and poisonous properties, is ill- adapted for bowel complaints. It is much whiter than the arrowroot made of Tacca, sticks to the hands like flour, and when a little water is allowed to act upon it, it assumes a pinkish colour ; whilst the arrowroot made of Tacca has a granulated feel, does not adhere to the hand like flour, and is not changed in colour by contact SAGO. 291 with water. The Cassava root has of late years been introduced into Fiji, and grows remarkably well. The Niu soria or Sogo (Sagus Vitiensis, Wendl.) is a genuine sago-palm, growing in swamps on Viti Levu, Vanua Levu, and Ovalau, and was first discovered by Mr. Pritchard and myself when on our first visit to Chief Kuruduadua. By asking the natives respecting the various palms of the islands, they described one which I was led to consider as the sago-yielding tree, and hence we made inquiries at all the places we called, but did not obtain a sight of it until we reached Taguru, on the southern coast of Viti Levu, and thence west- ward it was encountered in abundance. Fine groves, several miles in extent, were seen by us on the various branches and deltas of the Navua river. It was after- wards ascertained to grow on Ovalau ; and Mr. Water- house, when accompanying Colonel Smythe, found an extensive grove on the north-eastern parts of Vanua Levu. The natives of Ovalau term this palm Niu soria, those of Viti Levu, Sogo (pronounced " Songo ") ; the lat- ter name reminding one of " Sago " or " Sagu," by which some species of Sagus are known in other islands inha- bited by the Papuan race ; and rendering the discovery of this palm ethnologically as interesting as it is impor- tant commercially, by adding another raw product to the export list of the islands, and botanically, by ex- tending the geographical range of sago-yielding palms 1500 miles further south-east than it was previously known to exist. The natives of Fiji were unacquainted with the nutritious qualities residing in the trunk, until Mr. Pritchard and myself extracted the sago from it. u 2 292 A MISSION TO VITI. The Sogo grows in swamps, and the natives occasion- ally take advantage of the open places among the groves to plant taro, or even clear Sogo land for that purpose. The dimensions of the finest specimens were accurately measured. The largest trees felled were from forty to fifty feet high, and their trunks, in the thickest parts, from three feet nine inches to four feet four inches in circumference. The trunk is very straight, and densely covered with aerial roots, six to twelve lines long, all having the peculiarity of being directed upwards. The crown generally consists of about sixteen living leaves in all stages of development, and there are mostly five or six dead ones still adhering to it. The pinnatifid leaves are of a dark green, seventeen feet long ; whilst the leaflets, gracefully drooping at the tips, are from three and a half to four feet long, and three and a half inches broad. The petiole is covered with spines, which at its base are arranged in connected rows extending from side to side, and towards the top in horse-shoe- shaped collections. The spines are brown, and from one and a half to two and a half inches long. When the tree has attained maturity there appears a terminal pa- nicle about twelve feet high, and divided into twenty or more branches. These branches measure eight feet in length, and are again divided into about fourteen branchlets (each averaging from fourteen to sixteen inches). The fruit, in outer appearance resembling an inverted pine-cone, is beautifully polished and of a yellowish brown, much lighter than that of Sagus Hum- hiiy Mart. This palm forms a prominent feature in the landscape, the foliage fluttering like gigantic plumes in SAGO. 293 the wind, and outbidding the cocoa-nut in gracefulness of outline and movement ; the bold look of the flowers suddenly starting from the extremity of the trunk, and proclaiming, as it were by signal, that the time has arrived when nature has completed her task of laying up stores of nutritious starch, and that unless the harvest is at once gathered in, nothing will remain of the produce of years save the receptacle in which it was treasured up. Even the old dead trees, standing like so many skeletons amongst a host of young plants, present an interesting appearance, reminding one of the posts with their many arms over which the wires of electric telegraphs are carried. Mr. Pritchard and myself felled six trees, and carried two logs to Lado, where we made sago of one of them by grating and washing the yellow-white substance with which the inside was filled. The term " spongy " does not well apply to this substance ; it has rather the consistency of a hard-baked loaf, and that taken from the base of the tree has a sweet and pleasant taste ; to- wards the top it was more insipid. For the purpose of collecting sago it is of the highest importance that the tree should be cut down just at the time when the flowers begin to show themselves ; if felled sooner the tree has not attained its proper development, and the quantity of farinaceous matter will not be so great as at the period indicated ; if, on the other hand, the cutting down is deferred until the fruit has been formed, a con- siderable diminution of the quantity of sago meal will be observed ; and the longer such a postponement takes place, the less chance there is of collecting a remunera- tive amount, as the tree, when it has borne flower and 294 A MISSION TO VITI. fruit, which, unlike the cocoa-nut palm, it does only once during the term of its existence, speedily dies and crumbles into dust. The trees are easily felled, only the outer layers of wood possessing any hardness, the central parts being as soft as bread, so that a few strokes with a good axe will bring the largest tree to the ground.* Several kinds of spice are indigenous, or have become naturalized. Turmeric (Curcuma long a, Linn.), termed " Cago " by the Fijians, grows abundantly in all the lower districts. The whites use the rhizome in the pre- paration of curry, and the natives the powder of it as food, or more commonly to daub over the bodies of women after childbirth and those of dead friends — a custom also prevailing in the Samoan group, according to Mr. Pritchard. In the few districts that have as yet not been brought under the immediate influence of the British Consul or the missionaries, the heathen widows are painted with it before strangulation. In fact, tur- meric powder is with the Fijian what rouge and Kow- land's preparations are with us, a cosmetic. Promoting in their opinion health and beauty, it is put on with no sparing hand by the women, and pointed remarks are made about too great a proximity if a man be unfortu- nate enough to have some stains of turmeric on his body or scanty dress. The manufacture of turmeric is similar to that of arrowroot, and is generally managed by the women. The receiving pits dug in the ground are lined with herbage, so as to retain the juicy parts. The grated rhizome is afterwards placed in the body of a canoe, and * Dr. Bennett, of Sydney, found a sago palm on Botuma, north of Fiji, possibly identical with the Fijian, but there are no specimens. SPICES. 295 rolled up and strained through a fine basket lined with fern leaves. It is then carried away in bamboos, and for several days exposed to the air, when the fluid is gently poured off, and a sediment, the Eerega of Fiji or turmeric of commerce, is found at the bottom. A species of ginger (Zingiber Zerumbet, Rose.) also abounds in the lower districts of the group, where it is called " Beta." The rhizome, though less pungent than that of the spe- cies exported from China, has been found to make tole- rably good preserves, and answers all the other purposes for which genuine ginger (Zingiber officinale, Linn.) is commonly employed. During our journey we often used it with turmeric, a few leaves of an aromatic Zingi- beraceous plant termed " Cevuga " (Amomum sp.), and a few fruits of the bird's-eye pepper for making curry, which, all the ingredients being fresh, proved of excel- lent flavour. A species of Nutmeg (Myristica castanece- folia, A. Gray), termed " Male," is found in the larger islands, forming trees sixty to eighty feet high, but yielding a very inferior kind of timber, which rapidly decays when exposed to the influence of the weather. Both its mace and nut prove a good substitute for those of the genuine nutmeg (Myristica moschata, Linn). The " nut " was turned to no account until the whites pointed out its valuable properties. It is about the size of a pigeon's egg ; the mace (arillus) is of a fine pink colour, and the shape of the nut it encloses is too oblong to allow this kind of nutmeg ever to be passed off for the genuine and best sorts of the Indian Archipelago, though the Fijian produce may resemble them in every other respect. Bird's-eye pepper (Capsicum frutescens, Linn.) 296 A MISSION TO VITI. is met with in every part of the islands, especially in places under cultivation, producing rich harvests of red pungent fruits. The Fijians call it " Boro ni papa- lagi" (i. e. foreign Boro), in contradistinction to " Boro ni Viti," or Fijian Boro (Solatium anthropophagorum, Seem., and S. oleraceum* Dun.) ; thus indicating that the bird's- eye pepper has been introduced by the white man, and is merely to be looked upon as naturalized, not wild. The staple food is the same all over Polynesia, being derived, with the total exclusion of all grain and pulse, from the yam, the Taro, the banana, the plantain, the breadfruit, and the cocoa-nut; but the bulk of it is furnished in the different countries by only one of these plants. In the Hawaiian group the Taro takes the lead, whilst the cocoa-nut is looked upon as a delicacy, from which the women were formerly altogether cut off. In some of the smaller coral islands the inhabitants live almost entirely upon cocoa-nuts. The Samoans place the breadfruit at the head of the list. Again, the Fijians think more of the yam than of the others, though all grow in their islands in the greatest perfection and in an endless number of varieties. A striking proof of how much the yam engages their attention is furnished by the fact of its cultivation and ripening season being made the chief foundation of their calendar ; and that only such of the eleven months, into which the year is divided, bear no names indicative of it, in which the crop re- quires no particular attention, or has been safely housed. A version of this calendar has been published by Wilkes in ' The Narrative of the United States Exploring Ex- pedition,' and is placed in juxtaposition with one die- STAPLE FOOD. 297 tated to me by an intelligent Bauan chief, and the con- sular interpreter, Mr. Charles Wise. The names given by me, as well as their succession, do not quite agree with those given by Wilkes. This discrepancy is partly ex- plained by Wilkes having taken down his list from the lips of Europeans imperfectly versed in Fijian, and by his adopting a loose way of spelling. The names of the months may also be different in different parts of the group. The subject, however, requires still further in- vestigation. If, as has been averred, the Fijians inva- riably commenced the months with the appearance of the new moon, there would soon have been a vast dif- ference between the lunar and the solar year. To guard against the irregularity that would thus have been in- troduced into the seasons, and to make the lunar year correspond with the solar, it would have been necessary either to intercalate a moon after every thirty-sixth moon, or to allow a greater period of time for one of the eleven months into which the Fijian year is divided. The latter seems to have been effected by the Vula i were were (clearing month). Hazel wood (' Fijian and English Dictionary,' Viwa, 1850, p. 180) allows four months, May, June, July, and August, for it ; but this cannot be correct, as it would derange the others. By restricting it to two or thereabouts, June and July, a proper arrangement is effected. I place the Vula i werewere first in my list instead of the month answering to January, because it is in the spring of the year (June and July), and the commencement of the agricultural operations and natural phenomena upon which the ca- lendar is based. 298 A MISSION TO V1TI. Fijian Calendar. ACCOEDING TO SEEMANN. 1. Vula i werewere = June, July, clearing month ; when the land is cleared of weeds and trees. 2. Vula i cukicuki = August; when the yam -fields are dug and planted. 3. Vula i vavakadi = Sep- tember ; putting reeds to yams to enable them to climb up. 4. Vula i Balolo lailai = Oc- tober; when the balolo (Palolo viridis, Gray), a remarkable Annelidan animal, first makes its appearance in small numbers. 5. Vula i Balolo levu = No- vember ; when the ba- lolo (Palolo viridis, Gray) is seen in great numbers ; the 25th of November generally is the day when most of these animals are caught. 6. Vula i nuqa lailai = De- cember ; a fish called ' ' nuqa " comes in in iso- lated numbers. 7. Vula i nuqa levu = Jan- uary ; when the nuqa fish arrives in great num- bers. ACCOBDING TO WILKES. 1. Vulai were were, weeding month. 2. Vulai lou lou, digging ground and planting. 3. Vulai Kawawaka. 4. Bololo vava Konde. 5. Bololo lid). 6. Numa lieb, or Nuga lailai. 7. Vulai song a sou tombe sou, or Nuga levu; reed blos- soms. STAPLE FOOD. 299 8. Vula ni sevu = February; when offerings of the first dug yams (ai sevu) are made to the priests. 9. Vula i Kelikeli = March; digging up yams and storing them in sheds. 10. Vula i gasau = April ; reeds (gasau) begin to sprout out afresh. 11. Vula i